BOOK V.THE WARS WITH THE MOORS
CHAPTER
XXXVIII. 1566-1567.
It was in the beginning of the eighth century, in the year 711, that the Arabs,
filled with the spirit of conquest which had been breathed into them by their
warlike apostle, after traversing the southern shores of the Mediterranean,
reached the borders of those straits that separate Africa from Europe. Here
they paused for a moment, before carrying their banners into a strange and
unknown quarter of the globe. It was but for a moment, however, when, with
accumulated strength, they descended on the sunny fields of Andalusia, met the
whole Gothic array on the banks of the Guadalete,
and, after that fatal battle, in which King Roderick fell with the flower of
his nobility, spread themselves, like an army of locusts, over every part of
the Peninsula. Three years sufficed for the conquest of the country,—except
that small corner in the north, where a remnant of the Goths contrived to
maintain a savage independence, and where the rudeness of the soil held out to
the Saracens no temptation to follow them.
It was much the same story that was repeated, more than three centuries
later, by the Norman conquerors in England. The battle of Hastings was to that
kingdom what the battle of the Guadalete was to
Spain; though the Norman barons, as they rode over the prostrate land, dictated
terms to the vanquished of a sterner character than those granted by the
Saracens.
But whatever resemblance there may be in the general outlines of the two
conquests, there is none in the results that followed. In England the Norman
and the Saxon, sprung from a common stock, could not permanently be kept
asunder by the barrier which at first was naturally interposed between the
conqueror and the conquered; and in less, probably, than three centuries after
the invasion, the two nations had imperceptibly melted into one; so that the
Englishman of that day might trace the current that flowed through his veins to
both a Norman and a Saxon origin.
It was far otherwise in Spain, where difference of race, of religion, of
national tradition, of moral and physical organization, placed a gulf between
the victors and the vanquished too wide to be overleaped. It is true, indeed,
that very many of the natives, accepting the liberal terms offered by the
Saracens, preferred remaining in the genial clime of the south to sharing the
rude independence of their brethren in the Asturias, and that, in the course of
time, intermarriages, to some extent, took place between them and their Moslem
conquerors. To what extent cannot now be known. The intercourse was certainly
far greater than that between our New-England ancestors and the Indian race
which they found in possession of the soil,—that ill-fated race, which seems to
have shrunk from the touch of civilization, and to have passed away before it
like the leaves of the forest before the breath of winter. The union was
probably not so intimate as that which existed between the old Spaniards and
the semi-civilized tribes that occupied the plateau of Mexico, whose
descendants, at this day, are to be there seen filling the highest places, both
social and political, and whose especial boast it is to have sprung from the
countrymen of Montezuma.
The very anxiety shown by the modern Spaniard to prove that only the sangre azul,—blue
blood,—flows through his veins, uncontaminated by any Moorish or Jewish taint,
may be thought to afford some evidence of the intimacy which once existed
between his forefathers and the tribes of Eastern origin. However this may be,
it is certain that no length of time ever served, in the eye of the Spaniard,
to give the Moslem invader a title to the soil; and after the lapse of nearly
eight centuries,—as long a period as that which has passed since the Norman
conquest, the Arabs were still looked upon as intruders, whom it was the
sacred duty of the Spaniards to exterminate or to expel from the land.
This, then, was their mission. And it is interesting to see how faithfully
they fulfilled it; and during the long period of the Middle Ages, when other
nations were occupied with base feudal quarrels or border warfare, it is
curious to observe the Spaniard intent on the one great object of reclaiming
his country from the possession of the infidel. It was a work of time; and his
progress, at first almost imperceptible, was to be measured by centuries. By
the end of the ninth century it had reached as far as the Ebro and the Douro.
By the middle of the eleventh, the victorious banner of the Cid had penetrated
to the Tagus. The fortunes of Christian Spain trembled in the balance on the
great day of Navas de Tolosa, which gave a permanent ascendancy to the Castilian
arms; and by the middle of the thirteenth century the campaigns of James the
First of Aragon, and of St. Ferdinand of Castile, stripping the Moslems of the
other southern provinces, had reduced them to the petty kingdom of Granada. Yet
on this narrow spot they still continued to maintain a national existence, and
to bid defiance for more than two centuries longer to all the efforts of the
Christians. The final triumph of the latter was reserved for the glorious reign
of Ferdinand and Isabella. It was on the second of January, 1492, that, after a
war which rivalled that of Troy in its duration, and surpassed it in the
romantic character of its incidents, the august pair made their solemn entry
into Granada; while the large silver cross which had served as their banner
through the war, sparkling in the sunbeams on the red towers of the Alhambra,
announced to the Christian world that the last rood of territory in the
Peninsula had passed away for ever from the Moslem.
The peculiar nature of the war in which the Spaniard for eight centuries
had thus been engaged, exercised an important influence on the national
character. Generation after generation had passed their lives in one long
uninterrupted crusade. It had something of the same effect on the character of
the nation that the wars for the recovery of Palestine had on the Crusaders of
the Middle Ages. Every man learned to regard himself as in an especial manner
the soldier of Heaven,—for ever fighting the great battle of the Faith. With a
mind exalted by this sublime conviction, what wonder that he should have been
ever ready to discern the immediate interposition of Heaven in his behalf—that
he should have seen again and again the patron saint of his country, charging
on his milk-white steed at the head of his celestial chivalry, and restoring
the wavering fortunes of the fight? In this exalted state of feeling,
institutions that assumed elsewhere only a political or military aspect wore
here the garb of religion. Thus the orders of chivalry, of which there were
several in the Peninsula, were founded on the same principles as those of
Palestine, where the members were pledged to perpetual war against the infidel.
As a consequence of these wars with the Moslems, the patriotic principle
became identified with the religious. In the enemies of his country the
Spaniard beheld also the enemies of God; and feelings of national hostility
were still further embittered by those of religious hatred. In the palmy days
of the Arabian empire, these feelings, it is true, were tempered by those of
respect for an enemy who, in the various forms of civilization, surpassed not
merely the Spaniards, but every nation in Christendom. Nor was this respect
wholly abated under the princes who afterwards ruled with imperial sway over
Granada, and who displayed, in their little courts, such a union of the
courtesies of Christian chivalry with the magnificence of the East, as shed a
ray of glory on the declining days of the Moslem empire in the Peninsula.
But as the Arabs, shorn of their ancient opulence and power, descended in
the scale, the Spaniards became more arrogant. The feelings of aversion with
which they had hitherto regarded their enemies, were now mingled with those of
contempt. The latent fire of intolerance was fanned into a blaze by the breath
of the fanatical clergy, who naturally possessed unbounded influence in a
country where religious considerations entered so largely into the motives of
action as they did in Spain. To crown the whole, the date of the fall of
Granada coincided with that of the establishment of the Inquisition,—as if the
hideous monster had waited the time when an inexhaustible supply of victims
might be afforded for its insatiable maw.
By the terms of the treaty of capitulation, the people of Granada were
allowed to remain in possession of their religion and to exercise its rights;
and it was especially stipulated that no inducements or menaces should be held
out to effect their conversion to Christianity. For a few years the conquerors
respected these provisions. Under the good Talavera, the first archbishop of
Granada, no attempt was made to convert the Moslems, except by the legitimate
means of preaching to the people and of expounding to them the truths of
revelation. Under such a course of instruction the work of proselytism, though
steadily, went on too slowly to satisfy the impatience of some of the clergy.
Among others, that extraordinary man, Cardinal Ximenes, archbishop of Toledo,
was eager to try his own hand in the labour of
conversion. Having received the royal assent, he set about the affair with
characteristic ardour, and with as little scruple as
to the means to be employed as the most zealous propagandist could have desired.
When reasoning and expostulation failed, he did not hesitate to resort to
bribes, and, if need were, to force. Under these combined influences the work
of proselytism went on apace. Thousands were added daily to the Christian fold;
and the more orthodox Mussulmans trembled, at the prospect of a general
defection of their countrymen. Exasperated by the unscrupulous measures of the
prelate, and the gross violation they involved of the treaty, they broke out
into an insurrection, which soon extended along the mountain ranges in the neighborhood
of Granada.
Ferdinand and Isabella, alarmed at the consequences, were filled with
indignation at the high-handed conduct of Ximenes. But he replied, that the
state of things was precisely that which was most to be desired. By placing
themselves in an attitude of rebellion, the Moors had renounced all the
advantages secured by the treaty, and had, moreover, incurred the penalties of
death and confiscation of property! It would be an act of grace in the
sovereigns to overlook their offence, and grant an amnesty for the past, on
condition that every Moor should at once receive baptism or leave the country.
This precious piece of casuistry, hardly surpassed by anything in
ecclesiastical annals, found favour in the eyes of
the sovereigns, who, after the insurrection had been quelled, lost no time in
proposing the terms suggested by their minister as the only terms of
reconciliation open to the Moors. And, as but few of that unhappy people were
prepared to renounce their country and their worldly prospects for the sake of
their faith, the result was, that in a very short space of time, with but
comparatively few exceptions, every Moslem in the dominions of Castile
consented to abjure his own faith and receive that of his enemies.
A similar course of proceeding was attended with similar results in
Valencia and other dominions of the crown of Aragon, in the earlier part of
Charles the Fifth's reign; and before that young monarch had been ten years
upon the throne, the whole Moorish population—Moriscoes, as they were
henceforth to be called—were brought within the pale of Christianity,—or, to
speak more correctly, within that of the Inquisition.
Such conversions, it may well be believed, had taken too little root in the
heart to bear fruit. It was not long before the agents of the Holy Office
detected, under the parade of outward conformity, as rank a growth of
infidelity as had existed before the conquest. The blame might in part, indeed,
be fairly imputed to the lukewarmness of the Christian labourers employed in the work of conversion. To render this more effectual, the
government had caused churches to be built in the principal towns and villages
occupied by the Moriscoes, and sent missionaries among them to wean them from
their errors and unfold the great truths of revelation. But an act of divine
grace could alone work an instantaneous change in the convictions of a nation.
The difficulties of the preachers were increased by their imperfect
acquaintance with the language of their hearers; and they had still further to
overcome the feelings of jealousy and aversion with which the Spaniard was
naturally regarded by the Mussulman. Discouraged by these obstacles, the
missionary became indifferent to the results. Instead of appealing to the
understanding, or touching the heart, of his hearer, he was willing to accept
his conformity to outward ceremony as the evidence of his conversion. Even in
his own performance of the sacred rites, the ecclesiastic showed a careless
indifference, that proved his heart was little in the work; and he scattered
the purifying waters of baptism in so heedless a way over the multitude, that
it was not uncommon for a Morisco to assert that none of the consecrated drops
had fallen upon him.
The representations of the clergy at length drew the attention of the
government. It was decided that the best mode of effecting the conversion of
the Moslems was by breaking up those associations which connected them with the
past,—by compelling them, in short, to renounce their ancient usages, their
national dress, and even their language. An extraordinary edict to that effect,
designed for Granada, was accordingly published by Charles in the summer of
1526; and all who did not conform to it were to be arraigned before the
Inquisition. The law was at once met, as might have been expected, by
remonstrances from the men of most consideration among the Moriscoes, who, to
give efficacy to their petition, promised the round sum of eighty thousand gold
ducats to the emperor in case their prayers should be granted. Charles, who in
his early days did not always allow considerations of religion to supersede
those of a worldly policy, lent a favorable ear to the petitioners; and the
monstrous edict, notwithstanding some efforts to the contrary, was never
suffered to go into operation during his reign.
Such was the state of things on the accession of Philip the Second.
Granada, Malaga, and the other principal cities of the south, were filled with
a mingled population of Spaniards and Moriscoes, the latter of whom,—including
many persons of wealth and consideration,—under the influence of a more
intimate contact with the Christians, gave evidence, from time to time, of
conversion to the faith of their conquerors. But by far the larger part of the
Moorish population was scattered over the mountain-range of the Alpujarras,
south-east of Granada, and among the bold sierras that stretch along the
southern shores of Spain. Here, amidst those frosty peaks, rising to the height
of near twelve thousand feet above the level of the sea, and readily descried,
from their great elevation, by the distant voyager on the Mediterranean, was
many a green, sequestered valley, on which the Moorish peasant had exhausted
that elaborate culture which, in the palmy days of his nation, was unrivalled
in any part of Europe. His patient toil had constructed terraces from the rocky
soil, and, planting them with vines, had clothed the bald sides of the sierra with a delicious verdure. With the like industry he
had contrived a network of canals along the valleys and lower levels, which,
fed by the streams from the mountains, nourished the land with perpetual
moisture. The different elevations afforded so many different latitudes for
agricultural production; and the fig, the pomegranate, and the orange grew
almost side by side with the hemp of the north and the grain of more temperate
climates. The lower slopes of the sierra afforded
extensive pastures for flocks of merino sheep; and the mulberry-tree was raised
in great abundance for the manufacture of silk, which formed an important
article of export from the kingdom of Granada.
Thus, gathered in their little hamlets among the mountains, the people of
the Alpujarras maintained the same sort of rugged independence which belonged
to the ancient Goth when he had taken shelter from the Saracen invader in the
fastnesses of the Asturias. Here the Moriscoes, formed into communities which
preserved their national associations, still cherished the traditions of their
fathers, and perpetuated those usages and domestic institutions that kept alive
the memory of ancient days. It was from the Alpujarras that, in former times,
the kings of Granada had drawn the brave soldiery who enabled them for so many
years to bid defiance to their enemies. The trade of war was now at an end. But
the hardy life of the mountaineer gave robustness to his frame, and saved him
from the effeminacy and sloth which corrupted the inhabitants of the capital.
Secluded among his native hills, he cherished those sentiments of independence
which ill suited a conquered race; and, in default of a country which he could
call his own, he had that strong attachment to the soil which is akin to
patriotism, and which is most powerful among the inhabitants of a mountain
region.
The products of the husbandman furnished the staples of a gainful commerce
with the nations on the Mediterranean, and especially with the kindred people on
the Barbary shores. The treaty of Granada secured certain commercial advantages
to the Moors, beyond what were enjoyed by the Spaniards. This, it may be well
believed, was looked upon with no friendly eye by the latter, who had some
ground, moreover, for distrusting the policy of an intercourse between the
Moslems of Spain and those of Africa, bound together as they were by so many
ties—above all, by a common hatred of the Christians. With the feelings of
political distrust were mingled those of cupidity and envy, as the Spaniard saw
the fairest provinces of the south still in the hands of the accursed race of
Ishmael, while he was condemned to earn a scanty subsistence from the
comparatively ungenial soil of the north.
In this state of things, with the two races not merely dissimilar, but
essentially hostile to one another, it will readily be understood how difficult
it must have been to devise any system of legislation by which they could be
brought to act in harmony as members of the same political body. That the endeavors
of the Spanish government were not crowned with success would hardly surprise
us, even had its measures been more uniformly wise and considerate.
The government caused the Alpujarras to be divided into districts, and
placed under the control of magistrates, who, with their families, resided in
the places assigned as the seats of their jurisdiction. There seem to have been
few other Christians who dwelt among the Moorish settlements in the sierra, except, indeed, the priests who had charge of the
spiritual concerns of the natives. As the conversion of these latter was the
leading object of the government, they caused churches to be erected in all the
towns and hamlets; and the curates were instructed to use every effort to
enlighten the minds of their flocks, and to see that they were punctual in
attendance on the rites and ceremonies of the Church. But it was soon too
evident that attention to forms and ceremonies was the only approach made to
the conversion of the heathen; and that below this icy crust of conformity the
waters of infidelity lay as dark and deep as ever. The result, no doubt, was to
be partly charged on the clergy themselves, many of whom grew languid in the
execution of a task which seemed to them to be hopeless. And what task, in
truth, could be more hopeless than that of persuading a whole nation at once to
renounce their long-established convictions, to abjure the faith of their fathers,
associated in their minds with many a glorious recollection, and to embrace the
faith of the very men whom they regarded with unmeasured hatred? It would be an
act of humiliation not to be expected even in a conquered race.
In accomplishing a work so much to be desired, the Spaniards, if they
cannot be acquitted of the charge of persecution, must be allowed not to have
urged persecution to anything like the extent which they had done in the case
of the Protestant Reformers. Whether from policy or from some natural regard to
the helplessness of these benighted heathen, the bloodhounds of the Inquisition
were not as yet allowed to run down their game at will; and, if they did
terrify the natives by displaying their formidable fangs, the time had not yet
come when they were to slip the leash and spring upon their miserable victims.
It is true there were some exceptions to this more discreet policy. The Holy
Office had its agents abroad, who kept watch upon the Moriscoes; and occasionally
the more flagrant offenders were delivered up to its tender mercies. But a more
frequent source of annoyance arose from the teasing ordinances from time to
time issued by the government, which could have answered no other purpose than
to irritate the temper and sharpen the animosity of the Moriscoes. If the
government had failed in the important work of conversion, it was the more
incumbent on it, by every show of confidence and kindness, to conciliate the
good-will of the conquered people, and enable them to live in harmony with
their conquerors, as members of the same community. Such was not the policy of
Philip, any more than it had been that of his predecessors.
During the earlier years of his reign, the king's attention was too closely
occupied with foreign affairs to leave him much leisure for those of the
Moriscoes. It was certain, however, that they would not long escape the notice
of a prince who regarded uniformity of faith as the corner-stone of his
government. The first important act of legislation bearing on these people was
in 1560, when the Cortes of Castile presented a remonstrance to the throne
against the use of negro slaves by the Moriscoes, who were sure to instruct
them in their Mahometan tenets, and thus to multiply the number of infidels in
the land. A royal pragmatic was accordingly passed,
interdicting the use of African slaves by the Moslems of Granada. The
prohibition caused the greatest annoyance; for the wealthier classes were in
the habit of employing these slaves for domestic purposes, while in the country
they were extensively used for agricultural labor.
In 1563 another ordinance was published, reviving a law which had fallen
into disuse, and which prohibited the Moriscoes from having any arms in their
possession, but such as were duly licensed by the captain-general and were
stamped with his escutcheon. The office of captain-general of Granada was
filled at this time by Don Iñigo Lopez de Mendoza, count of Tendilla, who soon
after, on his father's death, succeeded to the title of marquis of Mondejar.
The important post which he held had been hereditary in his family ever since
the conquest of Granada. The present nobleman was a worthy scion of the
illustrious house from which he sprung. His manners were blunt, and not such as
win popularity; but he was a man of integrity, with a nice sense of humor and a
humane heart,—the last of not too common occurrence in the iron days of
chivalry. Though bred a soldier, he was inclined to peace. His life had been
passed much among the Moriscoes, so that he perfectly understood their humors;
and, as he was a person of prudence and moderation, it is not improbable, had
affairs been left to his direction, that the country would have escaped many of
those troubles which afterwards befell it.
It was singular, considering the character of Mendoza, that he should have
recommended so ill-advised a measure as that relating to the arms of the
Moriscoes. The ordinance excited a general indignation in Granada. The people
were offended by the distrust which such a law implied of their loyalty. They
felt it an indignity to be obliged to sue for permission to do what they
considered it was theirs of right to do. Those of higher condition disdained to
wear weapons displaying the heraldic bearings of the Mendozas instead of their own. But the great number, without regard to the edict
provided themselves secretly with arms, which, as it reached the ears of the
authorities, led to frequent prosecutions. Thus a fruitful source of irritation
was opened; and many, to escape punishment, fled to the mountains, and there
too often joined the brigands who haunted the passes of Alpujarras, and bade
defiance to the feeble police of the Spaniards.
These impolitic edicts, as they were irritating to the Moriscoes, were but
preludes to an ordinance of so astounding a character as to throw the whole
country into a state of revolution. The apostasy of the Moriscoes,—or, so to
speak more correctly, the constancy with which they adhered to the faith of
their fathers,—gave great scandal to the old Christians, especially to the
clergy, and above all to its head, Don Pedro Guerrero, archbishop of Granada.
This prelate seems to have been a man of an uneasy, meddlesome spirit, and
possessed of a full share of the bigotry of his time. While in Rome, shortly
before this period, he had made such a representation to Pope Pius the Fourth
as drew from that pontiff a remonstrance, addressed to the Spanish government, on
the spiritual condition of the Moriscoes. Soon after, in the year 1567, a
memorial was presented to the government, by Guerrero and the clergy of his
diocese, in which, after insisting on the manifold back-slidings of the "New Christians," as the Moriscoes were termed, they loudly
called for some efficacious measures to arrest the evil. These people, they
said, whatever show of conformity they might make to the requisitions of the
Church, were infidels at heart. When their children were baptized, they were
careful, on returning home, to wash away the traces of baptism, and, after
circumcising them, to give them Moorish names. In like manner, when their
marriages had been solemnized with Christian rites, they were sure to confirm
them afterwards by their own ceremonies, accompanied with the national songs
and dances. They continued to observe Friday as a holy day; and what was of
graver moment, they were known to kidnap the children of the Christians, and
sell them to their brethren on the coast of Barbary, where they were
circumcised, and nurtured in the Mahometan religion. This last accusation,
however improbable, found credit with the Spaniards, and sharpened the feelings
of jealousy and hatred with which they regarded the unhappy race of Ishmael.
The memorial of the clergy received prompt attention from the government,
at whose suggestion, very possibly, it had been prepared. A commission was at
once appointed to examine into the matter; and their report was laid before a
junta, consisting of both ecclesiastics and laymen, and embracing names of the
highest consideration for talent and learning in the kingdom. Among its members
we find the Duke of Alva, who had not yet set out on his ominous mission to the
Netherlands. At its head was Diego de Espinosa, at that time the favourite minister of Philip, or at least the one who had
the largest share in the direction of affairs. He was a man after the king's
own heart, and, from the humble station of colegial mayor of the college of Cuença in Salamanca,
had been advanced by successive steps to the high post of president of the
Council of Castile and of the Council of the Indies. He was now also bishop of
Siguenza, one of the richest sees in the kingdom. He held an important office
in the Inquisition, and was soon to succeed Valdés in the unenviable post of
grand inquisitor. To conclude the catalogue of his honors, no long time was to
elapse before, at his master's suggestion, he was to receive from Rome a
cardinal's hat. The deference shown by Philip to his minister, increased as it
was by this new accession of spiritual dignity, far exceeded what he had ever
shown to any other of his subjects.
Espinosa was at this time in the morning, or rather, the meridian of his
power. His qualifications for business would have been extraordinary, even in a
layman. He was patient of toil, cheerfully doing the work of others as well as
his own. This was so far fortunate that it helped to give him that control in
the direction of affairs which was coveted by his aspiring nature. He had a
dignified and commanding presence, with but few traces of that humility which
would have been graceful in one who had risen so high by his master's favor as
much as by his own deserts. His haughty bearing gave offence to the old
nobility of Castile, who scornfully looked from the minister's present
elevation to the humble level from which he had risen. It was regarded with
less displeasure, it is said, by the king, who was not unwilling to see the
pride of the ancient aristocracy rebuked by one whom he had himself raised from
the dust. Their mortification, however, was to be appeased ere long by the fall
of the favorite—an event as signal and unexpected by the world, and as tragical
to the subject of it, as the fall of Wolsey.
The man who was qualified for the place of grand inquisitor was not likely
to feel much sympathy for the race of unbelievers. It was unfortunate for the
Moriscoes that their destinies should be placed in the hands of such a minister
as Espinosa. After due deliberation, the junta came to the decision that the
only remedy for the present evil was to lay the axe to the root of it; to cut
off all those associations which connected the Moriscoes with their earlier
history, and which were so many obstacles in the way of their present
conversion. It was recommended that they should be interdicted from employing
the Arabic either in speaking or writing, for which they were to use only the
Castilian. They were not even to be allowed to retain their family names; but
were to exchange them for Spanish ones. All written instruments and legal
documents, of whatever kind, were declared to be void and of no effect unless
in the Castilian. As time must be allowed for a whole people to change its
language, three years were assigned as the period at the end of which this
provision should take effect.
They were to be required to exchange their national dress for that of the
Spaniards; and, as the Oriental costume was highly ornamented, and often very
expensive, they were to be allowed to wear their present clothes one year
longer if of silk, and two years if of cotton, the latter being the usual
apparel of the poorer classes. The women, moreover, both old and young, were to
be required, from the passage of the law, to go abroad with their faces
uncovered,—a scandalous thing among Mahometans.
Their weddings were to be conducted in public, after the Christian forms;
and the doors of their houses were to be left open during the day of the
ceremony, that any one might enter and see that they did not have recourse to
unhallowed rites. They were further to be interdicted from the national songs
and dances with which they were wont to celebrate their domestic festivities.
Finally, as rumors—most absurd ones—had got abroad that the warm baths which
the natives were in the habit of using in their houses were perverted to
licentious indulgences, they were to be required to destroy the vessels in
which they bathed, and to use nothing of the kind thereafter.
These several provisions were to be enforced by penalties of the sternest
kind. For the first offence the convicted party was to be punished with
imprisonment for a month, with banishment from the country for two years, and
with a fine varying from six hundred to ten thousand maravedis. For a second
offence the penalties were to be doubled; and for a third, the culprit, in
addition to former penalties, was to be banished for life. The ordinance was
closely modelled on that of Charles the Fifth, which, as we have seen, he was
too politic to carry into execution.
Such were the principal provisions of a law which, for cruelty and
absurdity, has scarcely a parallel in history. For what could be more absurd
than the attempt by an act of legislation to work such a change in the
long-established habits of a nation to efface those recollections of the
past, to which men ever cling most closely under the pressure of misfortune—to
blot out by a single stroke of the pen, as it were, not only the creed, but the
nationality of a people to convert the Moslem, at once, both into a
Christian and into a Castilian? It would be difficult to imagine any greater
outrage offered to a people than the provision compelling women to lay aside
their veils associated as these were in every Eastern mind with the
obligations of modesty; or that in regard to opening the doors of the houses,
and exposing those within to the insolent gaze of every passer; or that in
relation to the baths so indispensable to cleanliness and comfort,
especially in the warm climate of the South.
But the masterpiece of absurdity, undoubtedly, is the stipulation in regard
to the Arabic language; as if by any human art a whole population, in the space
of three years, could be made to substitute a foreign tongue for its own; and
that, too, under circumstances of peculiar difficulty, partly arising from the
total want of affinity between the Semitic and the European languages, and
partly from the insulated position of the Moriscoes, who, in the cities, had
separate quarters assigned to them, in the same manner as the Jews, which cut
them off from intimate intercourse with the Christians. We may well doubt, from
the character of this provision, whether the Government had so much at heart
the conversion of the Moslems as the desire to entangle them in such violations
of the law as should afford a plausible pretext for driving them from the
country altogether. One is strengthened in this view of the subject by the
significant reply of Otadin, professor of theology at
Alcalá, who, when consulted by Philip on the expediency of the ordinance, gave
his hearty approbation of it, by quoting the appalling Spanish proverb, “The
fewer enemies, the better”. It was reserved for the imbecile Philip the Third
to crown the disasters of his reign by the expulsion of the Moriscoes. Yet no
one can doubt that it was a consummation earnestly desired by the great body of
the Spaniards, who looked, as we have seen, with longing eyes to the fair
territory which they possessed, and who regarded them with the feelings of
distrust and aversion with which men regard those on whom they have inflicted
injuries too great to be forgiven.
Yet there were some in the junta with whom the proposed ordinance found no favor.
Among these, one who calls to mind his conduct in the Netherlands may be
surprised to find the duke of Alva. Here, as in that country, his course was
doubtless dictated less by considerations of humanity than of policy. Whatever
may have been his reasons, they had little weight with Espinosa, who probably
felt a secret satisfaction in thwarting the man whom he regarded with all the
jealousy of a rival.
What was Philip’s own opinion on the matter, we can but conjecture from our
general knowledge of his character. He professed to be guided by the decision
of the “wise and learned men” to whom he had committed the subject. That this
decision did no great violence to his own feelings, we may infer from the
promptness with which he signed the ordinance. This he did on the 17th of
November, 1566, when the pragmatic became a law.
It was resolved, however, not to give publicity to it at once. It was
committed to the particular charge of one of the members of the junta, Diego
Deza, auditor of the Holy Office, and lately raised by Espinosa to the
important post of president of the chancery of Granada. This put him at once at
the head of the civil administration of the province, as the Marquis of
Mondejar was at the head of the military. The different views of policy
entertained by the two men led to a conflict of authority which proved highly
prejudicial to affairs. Deza, who afterwards rose to the dignity of cardinal,
was a man whose plausible manners covered an inflexible will. He showed,
notwithstanding, an entire subserviency to the wishes of his patron, Espinosa,
who committed to him the execution of his plans.
The president resolved, with more policy than humanity, to defer the
publication of the edict till the ensuing first of January, 1667, the day
preceding that which the Spaniards commemorated as the anniversary of the
surrender of the capital. This humiliating event, brought home at such a crisis
to the Moriscoes, might help to break their spirits, and dispose them to
receive the obnoxious edict with less resistance.
On the appointed day the magistrates of the principal tribunals, with the corregidor of Granada at their head, went in solemn
procession to the Albaicin, the quarter occupied by
the Moriscoes. They marched to the sound of kettle-drums, trumpets, and other
instruments; and the inhabitants, attracted by the noise, and fond of novelty,
came running from their houses to swell the ranks of the procession on its way
to the great square of Bab el Bonat. This was an open space, of large extent, where
the people of Granada, in ancient times, used to assemble to celebrate the
coronation of a new sovereign; and the towers were still standing from which
the Moslem banners waved, on those days, over the heads of the shouting
multitude. As the people now gathered tumultuously around these ancient
buildings, the public crier, from an elevated place, read, in audible tones and
in the Arabic language, the royal ordinance. One may imagine the emotions of
shame, sorrow, and indignation with which the vast assembly, consisting of both
sexes, listened to the words of an instrument, every sentence of which seemed
to convey a personal indignity to the hearers—an outrage on all those ideas of
decorum and decency in which they had been nurtured from infancy; which rudely
rent asunder all the fond ties of country and kindred; which violated the
privacy of domestic life, deprived them of the use of their own speech, and
reduced them to a state of utter humiliation unknown to the meanest of their
slaves. Some of the weaker sort gave way to piteous and passionate
exclamations, wringing their hands in an agony of grief. Others, of sterner
temper, broke forth into menaces and fierce invective, accompanied with the
most furious gesticulations. Others, again, listened with that dogged, determined
air which showed that the mood was not the less dangerous that it was a silent
one. The whole multitude was in a state of such agitation that an accident
might have readily produced an explosion which would have shaken Granada to its
foundations. Fortunately there were a few discreet persons in the assembly,
older and more temperate than the rest, who had sufficient authority over their
countrymen to prevent a tumult. They reminded them that in their fathers' time
the emperor Charles the Fifth had consented to suspend the execution of a
similar ordinance. At all events, it was better to try first what could be done
by argument and persuasion. When these failed, it would be time enough to think
of vengeance.
One of the older Moriscoes, a man of much consideration among his
countrymen, was accordingly chosen to wait on the president and explain their
views in regard to the edict. This he did at great length, and in a manner
which must have satisfied any fair mind of the groundlessness of the charges
brought against the Moslems, and the cruelty and impracticability of the
measures proposed by the government. The president, having granted to the envoy
a patient and courteous hearing, made a short and not very successful attempt
to vindicate the course of the administration. He finally disposed of the whole
question by declaring that "the law was too just and holy, and had been
made with too much consideration, ever to be repealed; and that, in fine,
regarded as a question of interest, his majesty estimated the salvation of a
single soul as of greater price than all the revenues he drew from the
Moriscoes." An answer like this must have effectually dispelled all
thoughts of a composition, such as had formerly been made with the emperor.
Defeated in this quarter, the Moriscoes determined to lay their
remonstrance before the throne. They were fortunate in obtaining, for this
purpose, the services of Don Juan Henriquez, a nobleman of the highest rank and
consideration, who had large estates at Beza, in the heart of Granada, and who
felt a strong sympathy for the unfortunate natives. Having consented, though
with much reluctance, to undertake the mission, he repaired to Madrid, obtained
an audience of the king, and presented to him a memorial on behalf of his
unfortunate subjects. Philip received him graciously, and promised to give all
attention to the paper. “What I have done in this matter”, said the king, “has
been done by the advice of wise and conscientious men, who have given me to understand
that it was my duty”.
Shortly afterwards, Henriquez received an intimation that he was to look
for his answer to the president of Castille. Espinosa, after listening to the
memorial, expressed his surprise that a person of the high condition of Don
Juan Henriquez should have consented to take charge of such a mission. “It was
for that very reason I undertook it”, replied the nobleman, “as affording me a
better opportunity to be of service to the king”. “It can be of no use”, said
the minister; “religious men have represented to his majesty that at his door
lies the salvation of these Moors; and the ordinance which has been decreed, he
has determined shall be carried into effect”.
Baffled in this direction, the persevering envoy laid his memorial before
the councilors of state, and endeavored to interest them in behalf of his
clients. In this he met with more success; and several of that body, among whom
may be mentioned the duke of Alva and Luis de Avila, the grand commander of
Alcántara, whom Charles the Fifth had honored with his friendship, entered
heartily into his views. But it availed little with the minister, who would not
even consent to delay the execution of the ordinance until time should have
been given for further inquiry, or to confine the operation of it, at the
outset, to one or two of the provisions, in order to ascertain what would
probably be the temper of the Moriscoes. Nothing would suit the peremptory humor
of Espinosa but the instant execution of the law in all its details.
Nor would he abate anything of this haughty tone in favor of the
captain-general, the marquis of Mondejar. That nobleman, with good reason, had
felt himself aggrieved that, in discussions so materially affecting his own
government, he should not have been invited to take a part. From motives of
expediency, as much as of humanity, he was decidedly opposed to the passage of
the ordinance. It was perhaps a knowledge of this that had excluded him from a
seat in the junta. His representations made no impression on Espinosa; and when
he urged that, if the law were to be carried into effect, he ought to be
provided with such a force as would enable him to quell any attempt at
resistance, the minister made light of the danger, assuring him that three
hundred additional troops were as many as the occasion demanded. Espinosa then
peremptorily adjourned all further discussion, by telling the captain-general
that it would be well for him to return at once to Granada, where his presence
would be needed to enforce the execution of the law.
It was clear that no door was left open to further discussion, and that,
under the present government, no chance remained to the unfortunate Moriscoes
of buying off the law by the payment of a round sum, as in the time of Charles
the Fifth. All negotiations were at an end. They had only to choose between
implicit obedience and open rebellion. It was not strange that they chose the
latter.
CHAPTER
XXXIX. 1568.
The same day on which the ordinance was published in the capital, it was
proclaimed in every part of the kingdom of Granada. Everywhere it was received
with the same feelings of shame, sorrow, and indignation. Before giving way to
these feelings by any precipitate action, the Moriscoes of the Alpujarras were
discreet enough to confer with their countrymen in the Albaicin,
who advised them to remain quiet until they should learn the result of the
conferences going on at Madrid.
Before these were concluded, the year expired after which it would be penal
for a Morisco to wear garments of silk. By the president's orders it was
proclaimed by the clergy, in the pulpits throughout the city, that the law
would be enforced to the letter. This was followed by more than one edict
relating to other matters, but yet tending to irritate still further the minds
of the Moriscoes.
All hope of relieving themselves of the detested ordinance having thus
vanished, the leaders of the Albaicin took counsel as
to the best mode of resisting the government. The first step seemed to be to
get possession of the capital. There was at this time in Granada a Morisco
named Farax Aben-Farax, who followed the trade of a dyer. But though he was
engaged in this humble calling, the best blood of the Abencerrages flowed in
his veins. He was a man of a fierce, indeed ferocious nature, hating the
Christians with his whole heart, and longing for the hour when he could avenge
on their heads the calamities of his countrymen. As his occupation earned him
frequently into the Alpujarras, he was extensively acquainted with the
inhabitants. He undertook to raise a force there of eight thousand men, and
bring them down secretly by night into the vega,
where, with the aid of his countrymen in the Albaicin,
he might effect an entrance into the city, overpower the garrison in the
Alhambra, put all who resisted to the sword, and make himself master of the
capital. The time fixed upon for the execution of the plan was Holy Thursday,
in the ensuing month of April, when the attention of the Spaniards would be
occupied with their religious solemnities.
A secret known to so many could not be so well kept, and for so long a
time, but that some information of it reached the ears of the Christians. It
seems to have given little uneasiness to Deza, who had anticipated some such
attempt from the turbulent spirit of the Moriscoes. The captain-general,
however, thought it prudent to take additional precautions against it; and he
accordingly distributed arms among the citizens, strengthened the garrison of
the Alhambra, and visited several of the great towns on the frontiers, which he
placed in a better posture of defense. The Moriscoes, finding their purpose
exposed to the authorities, resolved to defer the execution of it for the
present. They even postponed it to as late a date as the beginning of the
following year, 1569. To this they were led, we are told, by a prediction found
in their religious books, that the year of their liberation would be one that
began on a Saturday. It is probable that the wiser men of the Albaicin were less influenced by their own belief in the
truth of the prophecy, than by the influence it would exert over the
superstitious minds of the mountaineers, among whom it was diligently
circulated.
Having settled on the first of January for the rising, the Moslems of
Granada strove, by every outward show of loyalty, to quiet the suspicions of
the government. But in this they were thwarted by the information which the
latter obtained through more trustworthy channels. Still surer evidence of
their intentions was found in a letter which fell by accident into the hands of
the marquis of Mondejar. It was addressed by one of the leaders of the Albaicin to the Moslems of the Barbary coast, invoking
their aid by the ties of consanguinity and of a common faith. "We are
sorely beset," says the writer, "and our enemies encompass us all
around like a consuming fire. Our troubles are too grievous to be endured.
Written," concludes the passionate author of the epistle, "in nights
of tears and anguish, with hope yet lingering,—such hope as still survives
amidst all the bitterness of the soul."
But the Barbary powers were too much occupied by their petty feuds to give
much more than fair words to their unfortunate brethren of Granada. Perhaps
they distrusted the efficacy of any aid they could render in so unequal a
contest as that against the Spanish monarchy. Yet they allowed their subjects
to embark as volunteers in the war; and some good service was rendered by the
Barbary corsairs, who infested the coasts of the Mediterranean, as well as by
the monfis,—as the African adventurers
were called,—who took part with their brethren in the Alpujarras, where they
made themselves conspicuous by their implacable ferocity against the
Christians.
Meanwhile the hot blood of the mountaineers was too much inflamed by the
prospect of regaining their independence to allow them to wait patiently for
the day fixed upon for the outbreak. Before that time arrived, several acts of
violence were perpetrated,—forerunners of the bloody work that was at hand. In
the month of December, 1568, a body of Spanish alguazils,
with some other officers of justice, were cut off in the neighborhood of
Granada, on their way to that city. A party of fifty soldiers, as they were
bearing to the capital a considerable quantity of muskets,—a tempting prize to
the unarmed Moriscoes,—were all murdered, most of them in their beds, in a
little village among the mountains where they had halted for the night. After
this outrage Aben-Farax, the bold dyer of Granada, aware of the excitement it
must create in the capital, became convinced it would not be safe for him to
postpone his intended assault a day longer.
At the head of only a hundred and eighty followers, without waiting to
collect a larger force, he made his descent, on the night of the twenty-sixth
of December, a week before the appointed time, into the vega of Granada. It was a dreadful night. A
snow-storm was raging wildly among the mountains, and sweeping down in pitiless
fury on the plains below. Favored by the commotion of the elements, Aben-Farax
succeeded, without attracting observation, in forcing an entrance through the
dilapidated walls of the city, penetrated at once into the Albaicin,
and endeavored to rouse the inhabitants from their slumbers. Some few came to
their windows, it is said, but, on learning the nature of the summons, hastily
closed the casements and withdrew, telling Aben-Farax that "it was madness
to undertake the enterprise with so small a force, and that he had come before
his time." It was in vain that the enraged chief poured forth imprecations
on their perfidy and cowardice, in vain that he marched through the deserted
streets, demolishing crucifixes and other symbols of Christian worship which he
found in his way, or that he shouted out the watchword of the faithful,
"There is but one God, and Mahomet is the prophet of God!" The uproar
of the tempest, fortunately for him, drowned every other noise; and no alarm
was given till he stumbled on a guard of some five or six soldiers, who were
huddled round a fire in one of the public squares. One of these Farax dispatched;
the others made their escape, raising the cry that the enemy was upon them. The
great bell of St. Salvador rang violently, calling the inhabitants to arms.
Dawn was fast approaching; and the Moorish chief, who felt himself unequal to
an encounter in which he was not to be supported by his brethren in the Albaicin, thought it prudent to make his retreat. This he
did with colors flying and music playing, all in as cool and orderly a manner
as if it had been only a holiday parade.
Meantime the citizens, thus suddenly startled from their beds, gathered
together, with eager looks, and faces white with fear, to learn the cause of
the tumult; and their alarm was not diminished by finding that the enemy had
been prowling round their dwellings, like a troop of mountain wolves, while
they had been buried in slumber. The marquis of Mondejar called his men to
horse, and would have instantly given chase to the invaders, but waited until
he had learned the actual condition of the Albaicin,
where a population of ten thousand Moriscoes, had they been mischievously
inclined, might, notwithstanding the timely efforts of the government to disarm
them, have proved too strong for the slender Spanish garrison in the Alhambra.
All, however, was quiet in the Moorish quarter; and, assured of this, the
captain-general sallied out, at the head of his cavalry and a small corps of
foot, in quest of the enemy. But he had struck into the mountain-passes south
of Granada; and Mendoza, after keeping on his track, as well as the blinding
tempest would permit, through the greater part of the day, at nightfall gave up
the pursuit as hopeless, and brought back his wayworn cavalcade to the city.
Aben-Farax and his troop, meanwhile, traversing the snowy skirts of the
Sierra Nevada, came out on the broad and populous valley of Lecrin,
spreading the tidings everywhere, as they went, that the insurrection was
begun, that the Albaicin was in movement, and calling
on all true believers to take up arms in defense of their faith. The summons
did not fall on deaf ears. A train had been fired which ran along the mountain
regions to the south of Granada, stretching from Almeria and the Murcian borders on the east to the neighborhood of Velez
Malaga on the west. In three days the whole country was in arms. Then burst
forth the fierce passions of the Arab,—all that unquenchable hate which seventy
years of oppression had nourished in his bosom, and which now showed itself in
one universal cry for vengeance. The bloody drama opened with the massacre of
nearly every Christian man within the Moorish borders,—and that too with
circumstances of a refined and deliberate cruelty, of which, happily, few
examples are to be found in history.
The first step, however, in the revolutionary movement had been a false
one, inasmuch as the insurgents had failed to secure possession of the capital,
which would have furnished so important a point d'appui for
future operations. Yet, if contemporary chroniclers are correct, this failure
should rather be imputed to miscalculation than to cowardice. According to
them, the persons of most consideration in the Albaicin were many of them wealthy citizens, accustomed to the easy, luxurious way of
life so well suited to the Moorish taste. They had never intended to peril
their fortunes by engaging personally in so formidable a contest as that with
the Castilian crown. They had only proposed to urge their simple countrymen in
the Alpujarras to such a show of resistance as should intimidate the Spaniards,
and lead them to mitigate, if not indeed to rescind, the hated ordinance. If
such was their calculation, as the result showed, it miserably failed.
As the Moriscoes had now proclaimed their independence, it became necessary
to choose a sovereign in place of the one whose authority they had cast aside.
The leaders in the Albaicin selected for this
dangerous pre-eminence a young man who was known to the Spaniards by his
Castilian name of Don Fernando de Valor. He was descended in a direct line from
the ancient house of the Omeyas, who for nearly four
centuries had sat with glory on the throne of Cordova. He was but twenty-two
years of age at the time of his election, and, according to a contemporary who
had seen him, possessed a comely person and engaging manners. His complexion
was of a deep olive; his beard was thin; his eyes were large and dark, with
eyebrows well defined, and nearly approaching each other. His deportment was
truly royal; and his lofty sentiments were worthy of the princely line from
which he was descended. Notwithstanding this flattering portrait from the pen
of a Castilian, his best recommendation, to judge from his subsequent career,
seems to have been his descent from a line of kings. He had been so prodigal in
his way of life that, though so young, he had squandered his patrimony, and was
at this very time under arrest for debt. He had the fiery temperament of his
nation, and had given evidence of it by murdering, with his own hand, a man who
had borne testimony against his father in a criminal prosecution. Amidst his
luxurious self-indulgence he must be allowed to have shown some energy of
character and an unquestionable courage. He was attached to the institutions of
his country; and his ferocious nature was veiled under a bland and plausible
exterior, that won him golden opinions from the multitude.
Soon after his election, and just before the irruption of Aben-Farax, the
Morisco prince succeeded in making his escape from Granada, and, flying to the
mountains, took refuge among his own kindred, the powerful family of the
Valoris, in the village of Beznar. Here his
countrymen gathered round him, and confirmed by acclamation the choice of the
people of Granada. For this the young chieftain was greatly indebted to the
efforts of his uncle, Aben-Jahuar, commonly called El Zaguer, a man of much authority among his tribe, who,
waiving his own claims to the scepter, employed his influence in favor of his
nephew.
The ceremony of the coronation was of a martial kind, well suited to the
rough fortunes of the adventurer. Four standards, emblazoned with the Moslem
crescent, were spread upon the ground, with their spear-heads severally turned
towards the four points of the compass. The Moorish prince, who had been
previously arrayed in a purple robe, with a crimson scarf or shawl, the
insignia of royalty, enveloping his shoulders, knelt down on the banners, with
his face turned towards Mecca, and, after a brief prayer, solemnly swore to
live and die in defense of his crown, his faith, and his subjects. One of the
principal attendants, prostrating himself on the ground, kissed the footprints
of the newly-elected monarch, in token of the allegiance of the people. He was
then raised on the shoulders of four of the assistants, and borne aloft amidst
the waving of banners and the loud shouts of the multitude, "Allah exalt
Muley-Mohammed-Aben-Humeya, lord of Andalucia and
Granada!"
Such were the simple forms practiced in ancient times by the
Spanish-Arabian princes, when their empire, instead of being contracted within
the rocky girdle of the mountains, stretched over the fairest portions of the
Peninsula.
The first act of Aben-Humeya was to make his
appointments to the chief military offices. El Zaguer,
his uncle, he made captain-general of his forces. Aben-Farax, who had himself
aspired to the diadem, he removed to a distance, by sending him on an
expedition to collect such treasures as could be gathered from the Christian
churches in the Alpujarras. He appointed officers to take charge of the
different tahas, or districts, into which the country was divided.
Having completed these arrangements, the new monarch—the reyezuelo, or "little king," of the
Alpujarras, as he was contemptuously styled by the Spaniards—transferred his
residence to the central part of his dominions, where he repeated the ceremony
of his coronation. He made a rapid visit to the most important places in the sierra, everywhere calling on the inhabitants to return to
their ancient faith, and to throw off the hated yoke of the Spaniards. He then
established himself in the wildest parts of the Alpujarras, where he endeavored
to draw his forces to a head, and formed the plan of his campaign. It was such
as was naturally suggested by the character of the country, which, broken and
precipitous, intersected by many a deep ravine and dangerous pass, afforded
excellent opportunities for harassing an invading foe, and for entangling him
in those inextricable defiles, where a few mountaineers acquainted with the
ground would he more than a match for an enemy far superior in discipline and
numbers.
While Aben-Humeya was thus occupied in preparing
for the struggle, the work of death had already begun among the Spanish
population of the Alpujarras; and Spaniards were to be found, in greater or
less numbers, in all the Moorish towns and hamlets that dotted the dark sides
of the sierras, or nestled in the green valleys at their base. Here they dwelt
side by side with the Moriscoes, employed probably less in the labors of the
loom, for which the natives of this region had long been famous, than in that
careful husbandry which they might readily have learned from their Moorish neighbors,
and which, under their hands, had clothed every spot with verdure, making the
wilderness to blossom like the rose. Thus living in the midst of those who
professed the same religion with themselves, and in the occasional interchange,
at least, of the kind offices of social intercourse, which sometimes led to
nearer domestic ties, the Christians of the Alpujarras dwelt in blind security,
little dreaming of the mine beneath their feet.
But no sooner was the first note of insurrection sounded, than the scene
changed as if by magic. Every Morisco threw away his mask, and, turning on the
Christians, showed himself in his true aspect, as their avowed and mortal
enemy.
A simultaneous movement of this kind, through so wide an extent of country,
intimates a well-concerted plan of operations; and we may share in the
astonishment of the Castillan writers, that a secret
of such a nature, and known to so many individuals, should have been so long
and faithfully kept, in the midst, too, of those who had the greatest
interest in detecting it, —some of them, it may be added, spies of the Inquisition,
endowed, as they seem to have been, with almost supernatural powers for
scenting out the taint of heresy. It argues an intense feeling of hatred in the
Morisco, that he could have been so long proof against the garrulity that
loosens the tongue, and against the sympathy that so often, in similar
situations, unlocks the heart, to save some friend from the doom of his
companions. But no such instance, either of levity or lenity, occurred among
this extraordinary people. And when the hour arrived, and the Christians
discerned their danger in the menacing looks and gestures of their Moslem neighbors,
they were as much astounded by it as the unsuspecting traveler on whom, as he
heedlessly journeys through some pleasant country, the highwayman has darted
from his covert by the roadside.
The first impulse of the Christians seems to have been very generally to
take refuge in the churches; and every village, however small, had at least one
church, where the two races met together to join in the forms of Christian
worship. The fugitives thought to find protection in their holy places and in
the presence of their venerated pastors, whose spiritual authority had extended
over all the inhabitants. But the wild animal of the forest, now that he had
regained his freedom, gave little heed to the call of his former keeper,—unless
it were to turn and rend him.
Here crowded together, like a herd of panic-stricken deer with the hounds
upon their track, the terrified people soon found the church was no place of
security, and they took refuge in the adjoining tower, as a place of greater
strength, and affording a better means of defense against an enemy. The mob of
their pursuers then broke into the church, which they speedily despoiled of its
ornaments, trampling the crucifixes and other religious symbols under their
feet, rolling the sacred images in the dust, and desecrating the altars by the
sacrifice of swine, or by some other act denoting their scorn and hatred of the
Christian worship.
They next assailed the towers, the entrances to which the Spaniards had
barricaded as strongly as they could; though, unprovided as they were with
means of defense, except such arms as they had snatched in the hurry of their
flight, they could have little hope of standing a siege. Unfortunately, these
towers were built more or less of wood, which the assailants readily set on
fire, and thus compelled the miserable inmates either to surrender or to perish
in the flames. In some instances they chose the latter; and the little
garrison men, women, and children were consumed together on one
common funeral pile. More frequently they shrank from this fearful death, and
surrendered at the mercy of their conquerors, such mercy as made them soon
regret that they had not stayed by the blazing rafters.
The men were speedily separated from the women, and driven with blows and
imprecations, like so many cattle, to a place of confinement. From this
loathsome prison they were dragged out, three or four at a time, day after day,
the longer to protract their sufferings; then, with their arms pinioned behind
them, and stripped of their clothing, they were thrown into the midst of an
infuriated mob, consisting of both sexes, who, armed with swords, hatchets, and
bludgeons, soon felled their victims to the ground, and completed the bloody
work.
The mode of death was often varied to suit the capricious cruelty of the
executioners. At Guecija, where the olive grew
abundantly, there was a convent of Augustine monks, who were all murdered by
being thrown into caldrons of boiling oil. Sometimes the death of the victim
was attended with circumstances of diabolical cruelty, not surpassed by anything
recorded of our North-American savages. At a place called Pitres de Ferreyra, the priest of the village was raised by means of a pulley to a
beam that projected from the tower, and was then allowed to drop from a great
height upon the ground. The act was repeated more than once in the presence of
his aged mother, who, in an agony of grief, embracing her dying son, besought
him "to trust in God and the blessed Virgin, who through these torments
would bring him into eternal life." The mangled carcass of the poor
victim, broken and dislocated in every limb, was then turned over to the
Moorish women, who, with their scissors, bodkins, and other feminine
implements, speedily dispatched him.
The women, indeed, throughout this persecution, seem to have had as rabid a
thirst for vengeance as the men. Even the children were encouraged to play
their part in the bloody drama; and many a miserable captive was set up as a
target to be shot at with the arrows of the Moorish boys.
The rage of the barbarians was especially directed against the priests, who
had so often poured forth anathemas against the religion which the Moslems
loved, and who, as their spiritual directors, had so often called them to
account for offences against the religion which they abhorred. At Coadba the priest was stretched out before a brazier of
live coals until his feet, which had been smeared with pitch and oil, were
burned to a cinder. His two sisters were compelled to witness the agonies of
their brother, which were still further heightened by the brutal treatment
which he saw them endure from their tormentors.
Fire was employed as a common mode of torture, by way of retaliation, it
may be, for similar sufferings inflicted on the Infidel by the Inquisition.
Sometimes the punishments seemed to be contrived so as to form a fiendish
parody on the exercises of the Roman Catholic religion. In the town of Filix the pastor was made to take his seat before the
altar, with his two sacristans, one on either side of him. The bell was rung,
as if to call the people together to worship. The sacristans were each provided
with a roll containing the names of the congregation, which they were required
to call over, as usual, before the services, in order to see that no one was
absent. As each Morisco answered to his name, he passed before the priest, and
dealt him a blow with his fist, or the women plucked his beard and hair,
accompanying the act with some bitter taunt expressive of their mortal hate.
When everyone had thus had the opportunity of gratifying his personal grudge
against his ancient pastor, the executioner stepped forward, armed with a
razor, with which he scored the face of the ecclesiastic in the detested form
of the cross, and then, beginning with the fingers, deliberately proceeded to
sever each of the joints of his wretched victim!
But it is unnecessary to shock the reader with more of these loathsome
details, enough of which have already been given, not merely to prove the
vindictive temper of the Morisco, but to suggest the inference that it could
only have been a long course of cruelty and oppression that stimulated him to
such an awful exhibition of it. The whole number of Christians who, in the
course of a week, thus perished in these massacres if we are to receive
the accounts of Castilian writers was not less than three thousand!
Considering the social relations which must to some extent have been
established between those who had lived so long in the neighborhood of one
another, it might be thought that, on some occasions, sympathy would have been
shown for the sufferers, or that some protecting arm would have been stretched
out to save a friend or a companion from the general doom. But the nearest
approach to such an act of humanity was given by a Morisco, who plunged his
sword in the body of a Spaniard in order to save him from the lingering death
that otherwise would await him.
Of the whole Christian population very few of the men who fell into the
hands of the Moslems escaped with life. The women were not always spared. The
Morisco women, especially, who had married Christian husbands and embraced
Christianity, which they refused to abjure, became the objects of vengeance to
their own sex. Sad to say, even the innocence and helplessness of childhood
proved no protection against the fury of persecution. The historians record the
names of several boys, from ten to twelve or thirteen years of age, who were
barbarously murdered because they would not renounce the religion in which they
had been nurtured for that of Mahomet. If they were too young to give a reason
for their faith, they had at least learned the lesson that to renounce it was a
great sin; and, when led out like lambs to the slaughter, their mothers, we are
told, stifling the suggestions of natural affection in obedience to a higher
law, urged their children not to shrink from the trial, nor to purchase a few
years of life at the price of their own souls. It is a matter of no little
gratulation to a Catholic historian, that, amongst all those who perished in
these frightful massacres, there was not one of any age or either sex who could
be tempted to secure personal safety by the sacrifice of religious convictions.
On the contrary, they employed the brief respite that was left them in
fortifying one another's courage, and in bearing testimony to the truth in so
earnest a manner that they might almost seem to have courted the crown of
martyrdom. Yet among these martyrs there were more than one, it is admitted,
whose previous way of life showed but a dim perception of the value of that
religion for which, they were thus prepared to lay down their lives.
The chief blame of these indiscriminate proscriptions has been laid on
Aben-Farax, the famous dyer of Granada, whose appetite for blood seems to have
been as insatiable as that of any wild beast in the Alpujarras. In executing
the commission assigned to him by Aben-Humeya, he was
obliged to visit all parts of the country. Wherever he came, impatient of the
slower movements of his countrymen in the work of destruction, he caused the
prisons to be emptied, and the wretched inmates to be butchered before his eyes.
At Ugijar he thus directed the execution of no less
than two hundred and forty Christians, laymen and ecclesiastics. His progress
through the land was literally over the dead bodies of his victims.
Fierce as he was, Aben-Humeya had some touches of
humanity in his nature, which made him revolt at the wholesale murders
perpetrated by his lieutenant. He was the more indignant when, on hastening to Ugijar to save the lives of some of the captives, his
friends, he found that he had come too late, for the man of blood had been
there before him. He soon after summoned his officer into his presence, not
with the impolitic design of taxing him with his cruelties, but to call him to
a reckoning for the treasure he had pillaged from the churches; and
dissatisfied, or affecting to be so, with his report, he at once deposed
Aben-Farax from his command. The ferocious chief submitted without a murmur. He
descended into the common file, and no more appears on the scene. He was one of
those miscreants who are thrown on the surface by the turmoil of a revolution,
and, after floating there for a while, disappear from sight, and the wave of
history closes over them for ever.
CHAPTER XL. 1568-1569.
As day after day brought tidings to the people of Granada of the
barbarities perpetrated in the Alpujarras, the whole city was filled with grief
and consternation. The men might be seen gathered together in knots in the
public squares; the women ran about from house to house, telling the tale of
horrors which could hardly be exaggerated in the recital. They thronged to the
churches, where the archbishop and the clergy were all day long offering up
prayers to avert the wrath of heaven from Granada. The places of business were
abandoned. The shops and booths were closed. As men called to mind the late
irruption of Aben-Farax, they were filled with apprehensions that the same
thing would be attempted again; and rumors went abroad that the mountaineers
were plotting another descent on the city, and, with the aid of their
countrymen in the Albaicin, would soon deluge the
streets with the blood of the Christians. Under the influence of these fears,
some took refuge in the fortress of the Alhambra; others fled into the country.
Many kept watch during the long night, while those who withdrew to rest started
from their slumbers at the least noise, supposing it to be the war-cry of the
Moslem, and that the enemy was at the gates.
Nor was the alarm less that was felt by the Moriscoes in the city, as it
was certainly better founded, for the Moriscoes were the weaker party of
the two. They knew the apprehensions entertained of them by the Christians, and
that, when men have the power to relieve themselves of their fears, they are
not apt to be very scrupulous as to the means of doing so. They were afraid to
venture into the streets by day, and at night they barricaded their houses as
in a time of siege. They well knew that a single act of imprudence on their
part, or even the merest accident, might bring the Spaniards upon them, and
lead to a general massacre. They were like the traveler who sees the avalanche
trembling above him, which the least jar of elements, or his own unwary
movements, may dislodge from its slippery basis, and bring down in ruin on his
head. Thus the two races, inhabitants of the same city, were like two hostile camps,
looking on each other with watchful and malignant eyes, and ready at any moment
to come into deadly conflict.
In this stage of things the Moriscoes, anxious to allay the apprehensions
of the Spaniards, were profuse in their professions of loyalty, and in their
assurances that there was neither concert nor sympathy between them and their
countrymen in the Alpujarras. The government, to give still greater confidence
to the Christians, freely distributed arms among them, thus enabling them, as
far as possible, to provide for their own security. The inhabitants enrolled
themselves in companies. The citizen was speedily converted into the soldier,
and every man, of whatever trade or profession,—the mechanic, the merchant, the
lawyer, took his turn of military service. Even the advocates, when
attending the courts of justice, appeared with their weapons by their side.
But what contributed above all to revive the public confidence was the care
of the government to strengthen the garrison in the Alhambra by the addition of
five hundred regular troops. When, by these various means, the marquis of
Mondejar saw that tranquility was restored to the capital, he bestowed all his
thoughts on an expedition into the Alpujarras, desirous to crush the
insurrection in its bud, and to rescue the unfortunate captives, whose fate
there excited the most dismal apprehensions amongst their friends and relatives
in Granada. He sent forth his summons accordingly to the great lords and the
cities of Andalusia, to furnish him at once with their contingents for carrying
on the war. The feudal principle still obtained in this quarter, requiring the
several towns to do military service for their possessions, by maintaining,
when called upon, a certain number of troops in the field, at their own expense
for three months, and at the joint expense of themselves and the government for
six months longer. The system worked well enough in those ancient times, when a
season rarely passed without a foray against the Moslems. But since the fall of
Granada, a long period of inactivity had followed, and the citizen, rarely
summoned to the field, had lost all the essential attributes of the soldier.
The usual term of service was too short to supply the experience and the
discipline which he needed; and far from entering on a campaign with the
patriotic or the chivalrous feeling that gives dignity to the profession of
arms, he brought with him the mercenary spirit of a trader, intent only on his
personal gains, and eager, as soon as he had enriched himself by a lucky foray,
or the sack of some ill-fated city, to return home, and give place to others,
as inexperienced and possessed of as little subordination as himself.
But, however deficient this civic militia might be in tactics, the men were
well provided with arms and military accoutrements; and, as the motley array of
troops passed over the vega, they made a
gallant show, with their gay uniforms and bright weapons glancing in the sun,
while they proudly displayed the ancient banners of their cities, which had
waved over many a field of battle against the infidel.
But no part of the warlike spectacle was so brilliant as that afforded by
the chivalry of the country; the nobles and cavaliers who, with their retainers
and household troops, had taken the field with as much alacrity on the present
occasion as their fathers had ever shown when roused by the cry that the enemy
was over the borders. They were much inferior in numbers to the militia of the
towns. But inferiority of numbers was more than compensated by excellence of
discipline, by their perfect appointments, and by that chivalrous feeling which
made them discard every mercenary consideration in the pursuit of glory. Such
was the feeling of Luis Paer de Castillego,
the ancient regidor of Córdova. When offered an independent command, with the
emoluments annexed to it, he proudly replied: “I want neither rank nor pay. I,
my sons, my kindred, my whole house, will always be found ready to serve our
God and our king. It is the title by which we hold our inheritance and our
patent of nobility”.
With such loyal and high-mettled cavaliers to support him, Mondejar could
not feel doubtful of the success of his arms. They had, however, already met
with one reverse; and he received tidings that his advance-guard, sent to
occupy a strong pass that led into the mountains, had been driven from its
position, and had sustained something like a defeat. This would have been still
more decisive, had it not been for the courage of certain ecclesiastics, eight
in number four of them Franciscans, and four of the Society of
Jesus who, as the troops gave way, threw themselves into the thick of the
fight, and by their example shamed the soldiers into making a more determined
resistance. The present war took the form of a religious war; and many a
valiant churchman, armed with sword and crucifix, bore his part in it as in a
crusade.
Hastening his preparations, the captain-general, without waiting for
further reinforcements, marched out of Granada on the second of January, 1569,
at the head of a small body, which did not exceed in all two thousand foot and
four hundred horse. He was speedily joined by levies from the neighboring
towns—from Jaen, Loja, Alhama, Antequera, and other
places which in a few days swelled his little army to double its original
size. The capital he left in the hands of his son, the count of Tendilla; a man
of less discretion than his father, of a sterner and more impatient temper, and
one who had little sympathy for the Morisco. By his directions, the peasantry
of the vega were required to supply
the army with twenty thousand pounds of bread daily. The additional troops
stationed in the city, as well as those who met there, as in a place of
rendezvous, on their way to the sierra, were all
quartered on the inhabitants of the Albaicin, where
they freely indulged in the usual habits of military license. The Moriscoes
still retained much of that jealous sensibility which leads the natives of the
East to seclude their wives and daughters from the eye of the stranger. It was
in vain, however, that they urged their complaints in the most respectful and
deprecatory terms before the governor. The haughty Spaniard only answered them
with a stern rebuke, which made the Moriscoes too late repent that they had not
profited by the opportunity offered them by Aben-Farax of regaining their
independence.
Leaving Granada, the captain-general took the most direct route, leading
along the western slant of the Sierra Nevada, that mountain-range which, with
its frosty peaks glistening in the sun like palisades of silver, fences round
the city on the south, and screens it in the summer from the scorching winds of
Africa. Thence he rapidly descended into the beautiful vale of Lecrin, which spreads out, like a gay carpet embroidered
with many a wild flower, to the verge of the Alpujarras. It was now, however,
the dead of winter, when the bright coloring of the landscape, even in this favored
region, watered as it was by numerous fountains and running streams, had faded
into the somber tints more in harmony with the rude scenes on which the
Spaniards were about to enter.
Halting a night at Padul to refresh his troops,
Mondejar pressed forward to Durcal, which he reached
barely in time to save his advance-guard from a more shameful discomfiture than
it had before experienced; for the enemy, pressing it on all sides, was in
possession of the principal avenues to the town. On the approach of the main
body of the Spaniards, however, he made a hasty retreat, and established
himself in a strong position at the pass of Tablate.
The place was defended by a barranca, or ravine, not formidable
from its width, but its rocky side swept sheer down to a depth that made the
brain of the traveler giddy as he looked into the frightful abyss. The chasm
extended at least eight leagues in length, thus serving, like a gigantic ditch
scooped out by the hand of Nature, to afford protection to the beautiful valley
against the inroads of the fierce tribes of the mountains.
Across this gulf a frail wooden bridge had been constructed, forming the
only means of access from this quarter to the country of the Alpujarras. But
this structure was now nearly demolished by the Moriscoes, who had taken up the
floor, and removed most of the supports, till the passage of the tottering
fabric could not safely be attempted by a single individual, much less by an
army. That they did not destroy the bridge altogether, probably arose from
their desire to re-establish as soon as possible their communications with
their countrymen in the valley.
Meanwhile the Moslems had taken up a position which commanded the farther
end of the bridge, where they calmly awaited the approach of the Spaniards.
Their army, which greatly fluctuated in its numbers at different periods of the
campaign, was a miscellaneous body, ill-disciplined and worse armed. Some of
the men carried fire-arms, some crossbows; others had only slings or javelins,
or even sharp-pointed stakes; any weapon, in short, however rude, which they
had contrived to secrete from the Spanish officials charged with enforcing the
laws for disarming the Moriscoes. But they were a bold and independent race,
inured to a life of peril and privation; and, however inferior to the
Christians in other respects, they had one obvious advantage, in their familiarity
with the mountain wilds in which they had been nurtured from infancy.
As the Spaniards approached the ravine, they were saluted by the enemy,
from the other side, with a shower of balls, stones, and arrows, which, falling
at random, did little mischief. But as soon as the columns of the Christians
reached the brow of the barranca, and formed into line, they opened
a much more effective fire on their adversaries; and when the heavy guns with
which Mendoza was provided were got into position, they did such execution on
the enemy that he thought it prudent to abandon the bridge, and take post
behind a rising ground, which screened him from the fire.
All thoughts were now turned on the mode of crossing the ravine; and many a
look of blank dismay was turned on the dilapidated bridge, which, like a
spider's web, trembling in every breeze, was stretched across the formidable
chasm. No one was bold enough to venture on this pass of peril. At length a
Franciscan monk, named Christoval de Molina, offered himself for the emprise.
It was again an ecclesiastic who was to lead the way in the path of danger.
Slinging his shield across his back, with his robe tucked closely around him,
grasping a crucifix in his left hand, and with his right brandishing his sword,
the valiant friar set his foot upon the bridge. All eyes were fastened upon
him, as, invoking the name of Jesus, he went courageously but cautiously
forward, picking his way along the skeleton fabric, which trembled under his weight,
as if about to fall in pieces and precipitate him into the gulf below. But he
was not so to perish; and his safe arrival on the farther side was greeted with
the shouts of the soldiery, who, ashamed of their hesitation, now pressed
forward to follow in his footsteps.
The first who ventured had the same good fortune as his predecessor. The
second, missing his step or becoming dizzy, lost his foothold, and, tumbling headlong,
was dashed to pieces on the bottom of the ravine. One after another, the
soldiers followed, and with fewer casualties than might have been expected from
the perilous nature of the passage. During all this time they experienced no
molestation from the enemy, intimidated, perhaps, by the unexpected audacity of
the Spaniards, and not caring to come within the range of the deadly fire of
their artillery. No sooner had the arquebusiers crossed in sufficient strength,
than Mondejar, putting himself at their head, led them against the Moslems. He
was received with a spirited volley, which had well-nigh proved fatal to him;
and had it not been for his good cuirass, that turned the ball of an arquebuse, his campaign would have been brought to a close
at its commencement. The skirmish lasted but a short time, as the Moriscoes,
already disheartened by the success of the assailants, or in obedience to the
plan of operations marked out by their leader, abandoned their position, and
drew off rapidly towards the mountains. It was the intention of Aben-Humeya, as already noticed, to entangle his enemies in the
defiles of the sierra, where, independently of the
advantage he possessed from a knowledge of the country, the rugged character of
the ground, he conceived, would make it impracticable for both cavalry and
artillery, with neither of which he was provided.
The Spanish commander, resuming his former station, employed the night in
restoring the bridge, on which his men labored to such purpose, that by morning
it was in a condition for both his horse and his heavy guns to cross in safety.
Meanwhile he received tidings that a body of a hundred and eighty Spaniards, in
the neighboring town of Orgiba, who had thrown
themselves into the tower of the church on the breaking out of the
insurrection, were still holding their position, and anxiously looking for succor
from their countrymen. Pushing forward, therefore, without loss of time, he
resumed his march across the valley, which was here defended on either side by
rugged hills, that, growing bolder as he advanced, announced his entrance into
the gorges of the Alpujarras. The weather was tempestuous. The roads were
rendered worse than usual by the heavy rains, and by the torrents that
descended from the hills. The Spaniards, moreover, suffered much from
straggling parties of the enemy, who had possession of the heights, whence they
rolled down huge rocks, and hurled missiles of every kind on the heads of the
invaders. To rid himself of this annoyance, Mondejar ordered detachments of
horse—one of them under the command of his son, Don Antonio de Mendoza—to scour
the crests of the hills and dislodge the skirmishers. Pioneers were sent in
advance, to level the ground and render it practicable for cavalry. The service
was admirably performed; and the mountaineers, little acquainted with the
horse, which they seemed to have held in as much terror as did the ancient
Mexicans, were so astounded by seeing the light-footed Andalusian steed scaling
the rough sides of the sierra, along paths where the
sportsman would hardly venture, that, without waiting for the charge, they
speedily quitted the ground and fell back on the main body of their army.
This was posted at Lanjaron, a place but a few
miles off, where the Moriscoes had profited by a gentle eminence that commanded
a narrow defile, to throw up a breastwork of stone and earth, behind which they
were entrenched, prepared, as it would seem, to give battle to the Spaniards.
The daylight had begun to fade, as the latter drew near the enemy's
encampment; and, as he was unacquainted with the ground, Mondejar resolved to
postpone his attack till the following morning. The night set in dark and
threatening. But a hundred watchfires blazing on the hill-tops illumined the
sky, and sent a feeble radiance into the gloom of the valley. All night long
the wild notes of the musical instruments peculiar to the Moors, mingling with
their shrill war-cries, sounded in the ears of the Christians, keeping them
under arms, and apprehensive every moment of an attack. But a night attack was
contrary to the usual tactics of the Moors. Nor, as it appeared, did they
intend to join battle with the Spaniards at all in this place. At least, if
such had been their design, they changed it. For at break of day, to the
surprise of the Spaniards, no vestige was to be seen of the Moriscoes, who,
abandoning their position, had taken flight, like their own birds of prey, into
the depths of the mountains.
Mondejar, not sorry to be spared the delay which an encounter must have
caused him at a time when every moment was so precious, now rapidly pushed
forward to Orgiba, where he happily arrived in season
to relieve the garrison, reduced almost to the last extremity, and to put to
flight the rabble who besieged it.
In the fulness of their hearts, and with the tears streaming from their
eyes, the poor prisoners came forth from their fortress to embrace the
deliverers who had rescued them from the most terrible of deaths. Their
apprehensions of such a fate had alone nerved their souls to so long and heroic
a resistance. Yet they must have sunk ere this from famine, had it not been for
their politic precaution of taking with them into the tower several of the
Morisco children whose parents secretly supplied them with food, which served
as the means of subsistence—scanty though it was—for the garrison. But as the
latter came forth into view, their wasted forms and famine-stricken visages
told a tale of woe that would have softened a heart of flint.
The situation of Orgiba pointed it out as
suitable for a fortified post, to cover the retreat of the army, if necessary,
and to protect the convoys of supplies to be regularly forwarded from Granada.
Leaving a small garrison there, the captain-general, without longer delay, resumed
his pursuit of the enemy.
Aben-Humeya had retreated into Poqueira, a rugged district of the Alpujarras. Here he had
posted himself, with an army amounting to more than double its former numbers,
at the extremity of a dangerous defile, called the Pass of Alfajarali.
Behind lay the town of Bubion, the capital of the
district, in which, considering it as a place of safety, many of the wealthier
Moriscoes had deposited their women and their treasures.
Mondejar's line of march now took him into the heart of the wildest regions
of the Alpujarras, where the scenery assumed a character of sublimity very
different from what he had met with in the lower levels of the country. Here
mountain rose beyond mountain, till their hoary heads, soaring above the
clouds, entered far into the region of eternal snow. The scene was as gloomy as
it was grand. Instead of the wide-spreading woods that usually hang round the
skirts of lofty mountains, covering up their nakedness from the eye, nothing
here was to be seen but masses of shattered rock, black as if scathed by
volcanic fires, and heaped one upon another in a sort of wild confusion, as if
some tremendous convulsion of nature had torn the hills from their foundations,
and thrown them into primitive chaos. Yet the industry of the Moriscoes had
contrived to relieve the savage features of the landscape, by scooping out
terraces wherever the rocky soil allowed it, and raising there the vine and
other plants, in bright patches of variegated culture, that hung like a garland
round the gaunt and swarthy sierra.
The temperature was now greatly changed from what the army had experienced
in the valley. The wind, sweeping down the icy sides of the mountains, found
its way through the harness of the cavaliers and the light covering of the
soldiers, benumbing their limbs, and piercing them to the very bone. Great
difficulty was experienced in dragging the cannon up the steep heights, and
along roads and passes, which, however easily traversed by the light-footed
mountaineer, were but ill-suited to the movements of an army clad in the heavy
panoply of war.
The march was conducted in perfect order, the arquebusiers occupying the
van, and the cavalry riding on either flank, while detachments of infantry, the
main body of which occupied the center, were thrown out to the right and left,
on the higher grounds along the route of the army, to save it from annoyance
from the mountaineers.
On the thirteenth of January, Mondejar entered the narrow defile of Alfajarali, at the farther end of which the motley
multitude that had gathered round the standard of Aben-Humeya were already drawn up in battle-array. His right wing rested on the bold side
of the sierra; the left was defended by a deep
ravine, and his position was strengthened by more than one ambuscade, for which
the nature of the ground was eminently favorable. Indeed, ambushes and
surprises formed part of the regular strategy of the Moorish warrior, who lost
heart if he failed in these,—like the lion, who, if balked in the first spring
upon his prey, is said rarely to attempt another.
Putting these wily tactics into practice, the Morisco chief, as soon as the
Spaniards were fairly entangled in the defile, without waiting for them to come
into order of battle, gave the signal; and his men, starting up from glen,
thicket, and ravine, or bursting down the hill-sides like their own
winter-torrents, fell at once on the Christians,—front, flank, and
rear,—assailing them on every quarter. Astounded by the fiery suddenness of the
assault, the rear-guard retreated on the center, while the arquebusiers in the
van were thrown into still greater disorder. For a few moments it seemed as if
the panic would become general. But the voice of the leader was heard above the
tumult, and by his prompt and sagacious measures he fortunately succeeded in
restoring order, and reviving the confidence of his men. He detached one body
of cavalry, under his son-in-law, to the support of the rear, and another to
the front under the command of his son, Antonio de Mendoza. Both executed their
commissions with spirit; and Mendoza, outstripping his companions in the haste
with which he galloped to the front, threw himself into the thickest of the
fight, where he was struck from his horse by a heavy stone, and was speedily
surrounded by the enemy, from whose grasp he was with difficulty, and not till
after much hard fighting, rescued by his companions. His friend, Don Alonso
Portocarrero, the scion of a noble house in Andalusia, whose sons had always
claimed the front of battle against the infidel, was twice wounded by poisoned
arrows; for the Moors of the Alpujarras tipped their weapons with a deadly
poison distilled from a weed that grew wild among the mountains.
A fierce struggle now ensued; for the Morisco was spurred on by hate and
the recollection of a thousand wrongs. Ill provided with weapons for attack,
and destitute of defensive armor, he exposed himself to the hottest of his
enemy's fire, and endeavoured to drag the horsemen
from their saddles, while stones and arrows, with which some musket-balls were
intermingled, fell like rain on the well-tempered harness of the Andalusian
knights. The latter, now fully roused, plunged boldly into the thickest of the
Moorish multitude, trampling them under foot, and hewing them down, right and
left, with their sharp blades. The arquebusiers, at the same time, delivered a
well-directed fire on the flank of the Moriscoes, who, after a brave struggle
of an hour's duration, in which they were baffled on every quarter, quitted the
field, covered with their slain, as precipitately as they had entered it, and,
vanishing among the mountains, were soon far beyond pursuit.
From the field of battle Mondejar marched at once upon Bubion,
the capital of the district, and now left wholly unprotected by the Moslems.
Yet many of their wives and daughters remained in it; and what rejoiced the
heart of Mondejar more than all, was the liberation of a hundred and eighty
Christian women, who came forth, frantic with joy and gratitude, to embrace the
knees of their deliverers. They had many a tale of horror to tell their
countrymen, who had now rescued them from a fate worse than that of death
itself; for arrangements had been made, it was said, to send away those whose
persons offered the greatest attractions, to swell the harems of the fierce
Barbary princes in alliance with the Moriscoes. The town afforded a rich booty
to the victorious troops, in gold, silver, and jewels, together with the finest
stuffs, especially of silk, for the manufacture of which the people of the
country were celebrated. As the Spanish commander, unwilling to be encumbered
with unnecessary baggage, had made no provision for transporting the more bulky
articles, the greater part of them, in the usual exterminating spirit of war,
was consigned to the flames. The soldiers would willingly have appropriated to
themselves the Moorish women whom they found in the place, regarding them us
the spoils of victory; but the marquis, greatly to the disgust of his
followers, humanely interfered for their protection.
Mondejar now learned that Aben-Humeya, gathering
the wreck of his forces about him, had taken the route to Jubiles,—a
place situated in the wildest part of the country, where there was a fortress
of much strength, in which he proposed to make a final stand against his
enemies. Desirous to follow up the blow before the enemy had time to recover
from its effects, Mondejar resumed his march. He had not advanced many leagues
before he reached Pitres, the principal town in the
district of Ferreiras. It was a place of some importance, and was rich in the
commodities usually found in the great Moorish towns, where the more wealthy of
the inhabitants rivalled their brethren of Granada in their taste for sumptuous
dress and in the costly decorations of their houses.
The conquerors had here the satisfaction of releasing a hundred and fifty
of their poor countrywomen from the captivity in which they had been held,
after witnessing the massacre of their friends and relatives. The place was
given up to pillage; but the marquis, true to his principles, notwithstanding
the murmurs, and even menaces, of his soldiers, would allow no injury to be
done to the Moorish women who remained in it. In this he acted in obedience to
the dictates of sound policy, no less than of humanity, which indeed, happily
for mankind, can never be dissevered from each other. He had no desire to push
the war to extremities, or to exterminate a race whose ingenuity and industry
were a fruitful source of revenue to the country. He wished, therefore, to
leave the door of reconciliation still open; and while he carried fire and
sword into the enemy's territory, he held out the prospect of grace to those
who were willing to submit and return to their allegiance.
The route of the army lay through a wild and desolate region, which, from
its great elevation, was cool even in midsummer, and which now, in the month of
January, wore the dreary aspect of a polar winter. The snow, which never melted
on the highest peaks of the mountains, lay heavily on their broad shoulders,
and, sweeping far down their sides, covered up the path of the Spaniards. It
was with no little difficulty that they could find a practicable passage,
especially for the train of heavy guns, which were dragged along with
incredible toil by the united efforts of men and horses. The soldiers, born and
bred in the sunny plains of Andalusia, were but ill provided against an
intensity of cold of which they had never formed a conception. The hands and
feet of many were frozen. Others, benumbed, and exhausted by excessive toil,
straggled in the rear, and sunk down in the snow-drifts, or disappeared in the
treacherous ravines and crevices, which, under their glittering mantle, lay
concealed from the eye. It fared still worse with the Moriscoes, especially
with the women and children, who, after hanging on the skirts of the retreating
army, had, the better to elude pursuit, scaled the more inaccessible parts of
the mountains, where, taking refuge in caverns, they perished, in great
numbers, of cold and hunger.
Meanwhile Aben-Humeya, disheartened by his late
reverses, felt too little confidence in the strength of his present position to
abide there the assault of the Spaniards. Quitting the place, therefore, and
taking with him his women and effects, he directed his course by rapid marches
towards Paterna, his principal residence, which had the advantage, by its neighborhood
to the Sierra Nevada, of affording him, if necessary, the means of escaping
into its wild and mysterious recesses, where none but a native would care to
follow him. He left in the castle of Jubiles a great
number of Morisco women, who had accompanied the army in its retreat, and three
hundred men, who, from age or infirmity, would be likely to embarrass his
movements.
On reaching Jubíles, therefore, the Spanish
general met with no resistance from the helpless garrison who occupied the
fortress, which, moreover, contained a rich booty in gold, pearls, and precious
stones, to gratify the cupidity of the soldiers. Yet their discontent was expressed
in more audacious terms than usual at the protection afforded by their
commander to the Morisco women, of whom there were more than two thousand in
the place. Among the women found there was also a good number of Christian
captives, who roused the fierce passions of their countrymen by their piteous
recital of the horrors they had witnessed, of the butchery of fathers,
husbands, and brothers, and of the persecutions to which they had themselves
been subjected in order to convert them to Islamism. They besought the
captain-general to take pity on their sufferings, and to avenge their wrongs by
putting every man and woman found in the place to the sword. It is evident
that, however prepared they may have been to accept the crown of martyrdom
rather than abjure their faith, they gave little heed to the noblest of its
precepts, which enjoined the forgiveness of their enemies. In this respect
Mondejar proved himself decidedly the better Christian; for while he listened
with commiseration to their tale of woe, and did all he could to comfort them
in their affliction, he would not abandon the protection of his captives, male
or female, nor resign them to the brutality of his soldiers.
He provided for their safety during the night by allowing them to occupy
the church. But as this would not accommodate more than a thousand persons, the
remainder, including all the men, were quartered in an open square in the neighborhood
of the building. The Spanish troops encamped at no great distance from the
spot.
In the course of the night one of the soldiers found his way into the
quarters of the captives, and attempted to take some freedoms with a Morisco
maiden. It so happened that her lover, disguised in woman's attire, was at her
side, having remained with her for her protection. His Moorish blood fired at
the insult, and he resented it by striking his poniard into the body of the
Spaniard. The cry of the latter soon roused his comrades. Rushing to the place,
they fell on the young Morisco, who, now brandishing a sword which he had
snatched from the disabled man, laid about him so valiantly that several others
were wounded. The cry rose that there were armed men, disguised as women, among
the prisoners. More soldiers poured in to the support of their comrades, and
fell with fury on their helpless victims. The uproar was universal. On the one
side might be heard moans and petitions for mercy; on the other, brutal
imprecations, followed by deadly blows, that showed how little prayers for
mercy had availed. The hearts of the soldiers were harder than the steel with
which they struck; for they called to mind the cruelties inflicted on their own
countrymen by the Moriscoes. Striking to the right and left, they hewed down
men and women indiscriminately, both equally defenseless. In their blind
fury they even wounded one another; for it was not easy to discern friend from
foe in the obscurity, in which little light was to be had, says the chronicler,
except such as came from the sparks of clashing steel or the flash of fire-arms.
It was in vain that the officers endeavored to call off the men from their work
of butchery. The hot temper of the Andalusian was fully roused; and it would
have been as easy to stop the explosion of the mine when the train has been
fired, as to stay his fury. It was not till the morning light showed the
pavement swimming in gore, and the corpses of the helpless victims lying in
heaps on one another, that his appetite for blood was satisfied. Great numbers
of the women, and nearly all the men, perished in this massacre. Those in the
church succeeded in making fast the doors, and thus excluding their enemies,
who made repeated efforts to enter the building. The marquis of Mondejar,
indignant at this inhuman outrage perpetrated by his followers, and at their
flagrant disobedience of orders, caused an inquiry into the affair to be
instantly made; and the execution of three of the most guilty proved a salutary
warning to the Andalusian soldier that there were limits beyond which it was
not safe to try the patience of his commander.
Before leaving Jubíles, Mondejar sent off to
Granada, under a strong escort, the Christian captives who, since their
liberation, had remained with the army. There were eight hundred of them, women
and children, a helpless multitude, whose wants were to be provided for, and
whose presence could not fail greatly to embarrass his movements. They were
obliged to perform that long and wearisome journey across the mountains on
foot, as there were no means of transportation. And piteous was the spectacle
which they presented when they reached the capital. As the wayworn wanderers
entered by the gate of Bibarranbla, the citizens came
forth in crowds to welcome them. A body of cavalry was in the van, each of
the troopers holding one or two children on the saddle before him, with
sometimes a third on the crupper clinging to his back. The infantry brought up
the rear; while the center of the procession was occupied by the women, a
forlorn and melancholy band, with their heads undefended by any covering from
the weather; their hair, bleached by the winter's tempests, streaming wildly
over their shoulders; their clothes scanty, tattered, and soiled with travel;
without stockings, without shoes, to protect their feet against the cold and
flinty roads; while in the lines traced upon their countenances the dullest eye
might read the story of their unparalleled sufferings. Many of the company were
persons who, unaccustomed to toil, and delicately nurtured, were but poorly
prepared for the trials and privations of every kind to which they had been
subjected.
As their friends and countrymen gathered round them, to testify their
sympathy and listen to the story of their misfortunes, the voices of the poor
wanderers were choked with sobs and lamentations. The grief was contagious; and
the sorrowing and sympathetic multitude accompanied the procession like a train
of mourners to the monastery of Our Lady of Victory, in the opposite quarter of
the city, where services were performed with much solemnity, and thanks were
offered up for their deliverance from captivity. From the church they proceeded
to the Alhambra, where they were graciously received by the marchioness of
Mondejar, the wife of the captain-general, who did what she could to alleviate
the miseries of their condition. Those who had friends and relations in the
city, found shelter in their houses; while the rest were kindly welcomed by the
archbishop of Granada, and by the charitable people of the town, who provided
them with raiment and whatever was necessary for their comfort. The stories
which the fugitives had to tell of the horrid scenes they had witnessed in the
Alpujarras, roused a deeper feeling of hatred in the Spaniards towards the
Moriscoes, that boded ill for the security of the inhabitants of the Albaicin.
CHAPTER
XLI. 1569.
Before the marquis of Mondejar quitted Jubíles, he
received a visit from seventeen of the principal Moriscoes in that part of the
country, who came to tender their submission, exculpating themselves, at the
same time, from any share in the insurrection, and humbly suing for the
captain-general's protection. This, agreeably to his policy, he promptly
accorded, granting them a safe-conduct, with instructions to tell their
countrymen what he had done, and persuade them, if possible, to return to their
allegiance, as the only way of averting the ruin that else would speedily
overtake them. This act of clemency, so repugnant to the feelings of the
Spaniards, was a new cause of disgust to his soldiers, who felt that the fair
terms thus secured by the rebels were little less than a victory over
themselves. Yet the good effects of this policy were soon made visible, when
the marquis resumed his march; for, as his favorable dispositions became more
generally known, numbers of the Moriscoes, and several places on the route,
eagerly tendered their submission, imploring his mercy, and protection against
his followers.
Aben-Humeya, meanwhile, who lay at Paterna, with
his wives and his warriors gathered around, saw with dismay that his mountain
throne was fast sliding away from beneath him. The spirit of distrust and
disaffection had crept into his camp. It was divided into two parties; one of
these, despairing of further resistance, would have come instantly to terms
with the enemy; the other still adhered to a bolder policy; but its leaders, if
we may trust the Castilian writers, were less influenced by patriotic than by
personal motives, being for the most part men who had borne so conspicuous a
part in the insurrection, that they could scarcely hope to be included in any
amnesty granted by the Spaniards. Such, in particular, were the African
adventurers, who had distinguished themselves above all others by their
ferocious persecution of the Christians. They directed, at this time, the
counsels of the Moorish prince, filling his mind with suspicions of the loyalty
of some of his followers, especially of the father of one of his wives, a
person of much authority among the Moriscoes. To suspect and to slay were words
of much the same import with Aben-Humeya. He sent for
his relative, and, on his entering the apartment, caused him to be despatched before his eyes. He would have followed this up
by the murder of some others of the family, if they had not eluded his grasp;
thus establishing his title to a descent from those despots of the East with
whom the lives of their kindred were of as little account as the vermin in
their path.
He was still at the head of a numerous army; its number, indeed, amounting
to six thousand men, constituted its greatest strength; for, without
discipline, almost without arms, it was made up of such rude, incongruous
materials, that, as he already had experience, it could never abide the shock
of battle from the militia of Castile. The Moorish prince had other causes for
discouragement in the tidings he was hourly receiving of the defection of his
subjects. The clemency shown by the conqueror was doing more for him than his
arms, as the snow which the blasts of winter have only bound more closely
to the hill-side loosens its hold and falls away under the soft touch of
spring. Notwithstanding his late display of audacity, the unhappy young man now
lost all confidence in his own fortunes and in his followers. Sorely perplexed,
he knew not where to turn. He had little of the constancy or courage of the
patriot who has periled his life in a great cause; and he now had recourse to
the same expedient which he had so lately punished with death in his
father-in-law.
He sent a message to the marquis of Mondejar, offering to surrender, and,
if time were given, to persuade his people to follow his example. Meanwhile he
requested the Spanish commander to stay his march, and thus prevent a collision
with his troops. Mondejar, though he would not consent to this, advanced more
leisurely, while he opened a negotiation with his enemy. He had already come in
sight of the rebel forces, when he consented, at the request of Aben-Humeya, to halt for a night in the neighboring village of Iniza, in order to give time for a personal interview. This
required the troops, some of whom had now advanced within musket-range of the
enemy, to fall back, and take up ground in the rear of their present position.
In executing this maneuver, they came almost in contact with a detachment of
the Moorish army, who, in their ignorance of its real object, regarding the
movement as a hostile demonstration, sent a shower of arrows and other missiles
among the Spaniards, which they returned, with hearty goodwill, by a volley of
musketry. The engagement soon became general. Aben-Humeya at the time was reading a letter, which he had just received from one of
Mondejar's staff, arranging the place for the interview, when he was startled
by the firing, and saw with consternation his own men warmly engaged with the
enemy. Supposing he had been deceived by the Spaniards, he flung the letter on
the ground, and throwing himself into the saddle, without so much as attempting
to rally his forces, which were now flying over the field in all directions, he
took the road to the Sierra Nevada, followed by only five or six of his
attendants. His horse was fleet, and he soon gained the defiles of the
mountains. But he was hotly pursued; and, thinking it safer to trust to himself
than to his horse, he dismounted, cut the hamstrings of the animal, to prevent
his being of service to his pursuers, and disappeared in the obscure depths of
the sierra, where it would have been fruitless to
follow him.
The rout of his army was complete; and the victors might have inflicted an
incalculable loss on the fugitives, had not the marquis of Mondejar called off
his troops, and put a stop to the work of death. He wished to keep open as
widely as possible the door of reconciliation. His conduct, which was not
understood, and could not have been appreciated by his men, was stigmatized by
them as treachery. They found some amends for their disappointment in the
pillage of Paterna, the residence of Aben-Humeya,
which well provided with the costly finery so much loved by the Moriscoes,
furnished a welcome booty to the conquerors.
Among the Moorish captives were Aben-Humeya’s mother, two of his sisters, and one of his wives, to whom, as usual, Mondejar
extended his protection.
Yet the disposal of his prisoners was a subject of perplexity to the
Spanish commander. His soldiers, as we have seen, would have settled it at
once, had their captain consented, by appropriating them all as the spoils of
victory. There were many persons, higher in authority than these soldiers, who
were of the same way of thinking on the subject with them. The question was one
of sufficient importance to come before the government. Philip referred it to
the council of state; and, regarding it as a case of conscience, in which the
interests of religion were concerned, he asked the opinion of the Royal
Audience of Granada, over which Deza presided. The final decision was what
might have been expected from tribunals with inquisitors at their head. The
Moriscoes, men and women, were declared to have incurred by their rebellion the
doom of slavery. What is more remarkable is the precedent cited for this
judgment, it being no other than a decision of the Council of Toledo, as far
back as the time of the Visigoths, when certain rebellious Jews were held to
have forfeited their liberty by an act of rebellion. The Morisco, it was said,
should fare no better than the Jew, since he was not only, like him, a rebel
and an infidel, but an apostate to boot. The decision, it was understood, was
very satisfactory to Philip, who, however, “with the pious moderation that
distinguished so just and considerate a prince”, so far mitigated the severity
of the sentence, in the pragmatic which he published, as to exempt from its operation
boys under ten years of age and girls under eleven. These were to be placed in
the care of responsible persons, who would give them the benefits of a
Christian education. Unhappily, there is reason to think that the good
intentions of the government were not very conscientiously carried out in
respect to this provision by those entrusted with the execution of it.
While the question was pending, Jubíles fell into
the hands of the victors; and Mondejar, not feeling himself at liberty to
release his female captives, of whom more than a thousand, by this event, had
come into his possession, delivered them in charge to three of the principal
Moriscoes, to whom, it may be remembered, he had given letters of safe-conduct.
They were allowed to restore the women to their families, on condition that
they should all be surrendered on the demand of the government. Such an act, it
must be admitted, implies great confidence in the good faith of the Moslems,—a
confidence fully justified by the result. When, in obedience to the pragmatic,
they were claimed by the government, they were delivered up by their
families, with the exception of some who had died in the
meantime, and the greater part of them were sold by public auction in
Granada.
The only place of any importance which now held out against Mondejar was
Las Guájaras, situated in the plains of Salobreña, in the direction of Velez Malaga. This was a
rocky, precipitous hill, on the summit of which, nature, with little assistance
from art, had constructed a sort of rude fortress. It was held by a fierce band
of Moriscoes, who, descending from the heights, swept over the plains, carrying
on devastating forays, that made them the terror of the surrounding country.
Mondejar, moved by the complaints of the inhabitants, left Ugijar on the fifth of February, at the head of his whole array, now much augmented by
the arrival of recent levies, and marched rapidly on Guájaras.
He met with a more formidable resistance than he had expected. His first
attempt to carry the place was repulsed with a heavy loss on the part of the
assailants. The Moorish garrison, from its elevated position, poured a storm of
missiles on their heads, and, what was worse, rolled down huge masses of rock,
which, ploughing through the Castilian ranks, overthrew men and horses, and did
as great execution as would have been done by artillery. Eight hundred
Spaniards were left dead on the field: and many a noble house in Andalusia had
to go into mourning for that day’s disaster.
Mondejar, stung by this repulse,—the first reverse his arms had
experienced, determined to lead the attack in person on the following day.
His approaches were made with greater caution than before; and, without much
injury, he succeeded in bringing his arquebusiers on a higher level, where
their fire swept the enemy's intrenchments and inflicted on him a terrible
loss. Still the sun went down, and the place had not surrendered. But El Zamar,
its brave defender, without ammunition, almost without arms, felt that there
was no longer hope for his little garrison. Silently evacuating the place,
therefore, at dead of night, the Moriscoes, among whom were both women and
children, scrambled down the precipice with the fearlessness of the mountain
goat, and made their escape without attracting the notice of the Spaniards.
They left behind only such as, from age or infirmity, were unable to follow
them in their perilous descent.
On the next day, when the Spanish general prepared to renew the assault,
great was his astonishment to find that the enemy had vanished, except only a
few wretched beings incapable of making any resistance. All the evil passions
of Mondejar's nature had been roused by the obstinate defense of the place, and
the lives it had cost him. In the heat of his wrath, he ordered the helpless
garrison to be put to the sword. No prayer for mercy was heeded. No regard was
had to age or to sex. All were cut down in the presence of the general, who is even
said to have stimulated the faltering soldiers to go through with their bloody
work. An act so hard to be reconciled with his previous conduct has been
referred by some to the annoyance which he felt at being so frequently taxed
with excessive lenity to the Moriscoes, an accusation which was carried,
indeed, before the crown, and which the present occasion afforded him the means
of effectually disproving. However this may be, the historian must lament the
tarnished honor of a brave and generous chief, whose character up to this time
had been sullied by none of those acts of cruelty which distinguished this
sanguinary war.
But even this cruelty was surpassed by that of his son, the count of
Tendilla. El Zamar, the gallant defender of the fortress, wandered about among
the crags with his little daughter, whom he carried in his arms. Famished and
fainting from fatigue, he was at length overtaken by his enemies, and sent off
as a prisoner to Granada, where the fierce Tendilla caused the flesh to be torn
from his bones with red-hot pincers, and his mangled carcass, yet palpitating
with life, to be afterwards quartered. The crime of El Zamar was that he had
fought too bravely for the independence of his nation.
Having razed the walls of Guajaras to the ground,
Mondejar returned with his blood-stained laurels to his head-quarters at Orgiba. Tower and town had gone down before him. On every
side his arms had proved victorious. But one thing was wanting—the capture of
Aben-Humeya, the "little king" of the
Alpujarras. So long as he lived, the insurrection, now smothered, might be
rekindled at any time. He had taken refuge, it was known, in the wilds of the
Sierra Nevada, where, as the captain-general wrote, he was wandering from rock
to rock with only a handful of followers. Mondejar sent two detachments of
soldiers into the sierra, to discover his haunts, if
possible, and seize upon his person.
The commander of one of these parties, named Maldonado, ascertained that
Aben-Humeya, secreting himself among the fastnesses
of the mountains by day, would steal forth at night, and repair, with a few of
his followers, to a place called Mecina, on the
skirts of the sierra. Here he found shelter in the
house of his kinsman, Aben-Aboo, one of those
Moriscoes who, after the affair of Jubíles, had
obtained a safe-conduct from Mondejar. Having gained this intelligence, and
learned the situation of the house, the Spanish captain marched, with his
little band of two hundred soldiers, in that direction. He made his approach
with the greatest secrecy. Travelling by night, he reached undiscovered the neighborhood
of Aben-Aboo’s residence. Advancing under cover of
the darkness, he had arrived within gunshot of the dwelling, when, at this
critical moment, all his precautions were defeated by the carelessness of one
of his company, whose arquebuse was accidentally
discharged. The report, reverberating from the hills in the silence of night,
roused the inmates of the house, who slept as the wearied mariner sleeps when
his ship is in danger of foundering. One of them, El Zaguer,
the uncle of Aben-Humeya, and the person who had been
mainly instrumental in securing him his crown a crown of thorns was the
first roused, and, springing to the window, he threw himself down, though the
height was considerable, and made his way to the mountains.
His nephew, who lay in another part of the building, was not so fortunate. When
he reached the window, he saw with dismay the ground in front occupied by a
body of Castilian troops. Hastening to another window, he found it still the
same; his enemies were everywhere around the house. Bewildered and sorely
distressed, he knew not where to turn. Thus entrapped, and without the means of
making any terms with his enemies, he knew he had as little to hope from their
mercy as the wolf has from the hunters who have caught him in his lair. The
Spaniards, meanwhile, were thundering at the door of the building for
admittance. Fortunately it was well secured. A sudden thought occurred to Aben-Humeya, which he instantly put in execution. Hastening down
stairs, he took his station behind the door, and gently drew the bolts. The
noise was not heard amidst the din made by the assailants, who, finding the
door give way, supposed they had forced the fastenings, and pouring in, soon
spread themselves in every direction over the house in search of the fugitive.
Aben-Humeya, ensconced behind the door, escaped
observation; and, when his enemies had disappeared, stole out into the
darkness, and, under its friendly mantle, succeeded in finding his way to the
mountains.
It was in vain that the Spaniards, enraged at the loss of the quarry,
questioned Aben-Aboo as to the haunts of his kinsman,
and of El Zaguer, his uncle, in the sierra. Nor could the most excruciating tortures shake his
constancy. "I may die," said the brave Morisco, "but my friends
will live." Leaving him for dead, the soldiers returned to the camp,
taking with them a number of prisoners, his companions. There was no one of
them, however, that was not provided with a safe-conduct from the marquis, who
accordingly set them at liberty; showing a respect for his engagements, in
which unhappily, as we shall see hereafter, he was not too well imitated by his
soldiers. The heroic Aben-Aboo, though left for dead,
did not die, but lived to head another insurrection, and to take ample
vengeance on his enemies.
While the arms of the marquis of Mondejar were thus crowned with success,
the war raged yet more fiercely on the eastern slopes of the Alpujarras, where
a martial race of mountaineers threatened a descent on Almeria and the neighboring
places, keeping the inhabitants in perpetual alarm. They accordingly implored
the government at Granada to take some effectual measures for their relief. The
president, Deza, in consequence, desired the marquis of Los Velez, who held the
office of adelantado of the adjoining province of Murcia, to
muster a force and provide for the defense of the frontier. This proceeding was
regarded by Mondejar’s friends as an insult to that nobleman, whose military
authority extended over the country menaced by the Moriscoes. The act was the
more annoying, that the person invited to assume the command was a rival,
between whose house and that of the Mendozas there
existed an ancient feud. Yet the king sanctioned the proceeding, thinking
perhaps that Mondejar was not in sufficient force to protect the whole region
of the Alpujarras. However this may be, Philip, by this act, brought two
commanders of equal authority on the theatre of action; men who, in their
characters and habitual policy, were so opposed to each other, that little
concert could 'be expected between them.
Don Luis Fajardo, marquis of Los Velez, was a nobleman somewhat advanced in
years, most of which had been passed in the active duties of military life. He
had studied the art of war under the great emperor, and had acquired the
reputation of a prompt and resolute soldier, bold in action, haughty, indeed
overbearing, in his deportment, and with an inflexible will, not to be shaken
by friend or foe. The severity of his nature had not been softened under the
stern training of the camp; and, as his conduct in the present expedition
showed, he was troubled with none of those scruples on the score of humanity
which so often turned the edge of Mondejar’s sword from the defenceless and the weak. The Moriscoes, who understood his character well, held him in
terror, as they proved by the familiar sobriquet which they
gave him of the “iron-headed devil”.
The marquis, on receiving the invitation of Deza, lost no time in gathering
his kindred and numerous vassals around him; and they came with an alacrity
which showed how willingly they obeyed the summons to a foray over the border.
His own family was a warlike race, reared from the cradle amidst the din of
arms. In the present expedition he was attended by three of his sons, the
youngest of whom a boy of thirteen, had the proud distinction of carrying his
father's banner. With the levies promptly furnished from the neighboring
places, Los Velez soon found himself supported by a force of greater strength
than that which followed the standard of Mondejar. At the head of this valiant
but ill-disciplined array, he struck into the gloomy gorges of the mountains,
resolved on bringing the enemy at once to battle.
Our limits will not allow room for the details of a campaign which in its
general features bears so close a resemblance to that already described. Indeed
the contest was too unequal to afford a subject of much interest to the general
reader, while the details are of still less importance in a military view, from
the total ignorance shown by the Moriscoes of the art of war.
The fate of the campaign was decided by three battles, fought successively
at Huécija, Filix, and Ohanez, places all lying in the eastern ranges of the
Alpujarras. That of Filix was the most sanguinary. A
great number of stragglers hung on the skirts of the Morisco army; and besides
six thousand—many of them women—left dead upon the field, there were two
thousand children, we are told, butchered by the Spaniards. Some fled for refuge
to the caves and thickets; but they were speedily dragged from their hiding-places,
and massacred by the soldiers in cold blood. Others, to escape death from the
hands of their enemies, threw themselves headlong down the precipices,—some of
them with their infants in their arms,—and thus miserably perished. “The
cruelties committed by the troops”, says one of the army, who chronicled its
achievements, “were such as the pen refuses to record. I myself”, he adds, “saw
the corpse of a Morisco woman, covered with wounds, stretched upon the ground,
with six of her children lying dead around her. She had succeeded in protecting
a seventh, still an infant, with her body, and though the lances which pierced
her had passed through its clothes, it had marvelously escaped any injury. It
was clinging”, he continues, “to its dead mother’s bosom, from which it drew
milk that was mingled with blood. I carried it away and saved it”. For the
credit of human nature he records some other instances of the like kind, showing
that a spark of humanity might occasionally be struck out from the flinty
breasts of these marauders.
The field of battle afforded a rich harvest for the victors, who stripped
the dead, and rifled the bodies of the women of collars, bracelets, ornaments
of gold and silver, and costly jewels, with which the Moorish female loved to
decorate her person. Sated with plunder, the soldiers took the first occasion
to leave their colors and return to their homes. Their places were soon
supplied, as the display of their riches sharpened the appetites of their
countrymen, who eagerly flocked to the banner of a chief that was sure to lead
them on to victory and plunder. But that chief, with all his stern authority,
was no match for the spirit of insubordination that reigned among his troops;
and, when he attempted to punish one of their number for a gross act of
disobedience, he was made to understand that there were three thousand in the
camp ready to stand by their comrade and protect him from injury.
The wild excesses of the soldiery were strangely mingled with a respect for
the forms of religion, that intimated the nature of the war in which they were
engaged. Before entering into action the whole army knelt down in prayer,
solemnly invoking the protection of Heaven on its champions. After the battle
of Ohanez, where the mountain streams were so
polluted with the gore that the Spaniards found it difficult to slake their
thirst, they proceeded to celebrate the fête of the
Purification of the Virgin. A procession was formed to the church, which was
headed by the marquis of Los Velez and his chivalry, clad in complete mail, and
bearing white tapers in their hands. Then came the Christian women, who had
been rescued from captivity, dressed, by the general's command, in robes of
blue and white, as the appropriate colours of the
Virgin. The rear was brought up by a body of friars and other ecclesiastics,
who had taken part in the crusade. The procession passed slowly between the
files of the soldiery, who saluted it with volleys of musketry as it entered
the church, where Te Deum was
chanted, and the whole company prostrated themselves in adoration of the Lord
of Hosts, who had given his enemies into their hands.
From this solemn act of devotion the troops proceeded to the work of
pillage, in which the commander, unlike his rival, the marquis of Mondejar,
joined as heartily as the meanest of his followers. The Moorish captives, to
the number of sixteen hundred, among whom, we are told, were many young and
beautiful maidens, instead of meeting with the protection they had received
from the more generous Mondejar, were delivered up to the licentious soldiery;
and for a fortnight there reigned throughout the camp a carnival of the wildest
riot and debauchery. In this strange confusion of the religious sentiment and
of crimes most revolting to humanity, we see the characteristic features of the
crusade. Nowhere do we find such a free range given to the worst passions of
our nature as in the wars of religion, where each party considers itself
as arrayed against the enemies of God, and where the sanctity of the cause
throws a veil over the foulest transgressions that hides their enormity from
the eye of the transgressor.
While the Moriscoes were stunned by the fierce blows thus dealt in rapid
succession by the iron-hearted marquis, the mild and liberal policy of his
rival was still more effectually reducing his enemies to obedience.
Disheartened by their reverses, exhausted by fatigue and hunger, as they roved
among the mountains, without raiment to clothe or a home to shelter them, the
wretched wanderers came in one after another to sue for pardon. Nearly all the
towns and villages in the district assigned to Mondejar, oppressed with like
feelings of despondency, sent deputations to the Spanish quarters, to tender
their submission and to sue for his protection. While these were graciously
received, the general provided for the future security of his conquests, by
establishing garrisons in the principal places, and by sending small
detachments to different parts, to act as a sort of armed police for the
maintenance of order. In this way, says a contemporary, the tranquility of the
country was so well established, that small parties of ten or a dozen soldiers
wandered unmolested from one end of it to the other.
Mondejar, at the same time, wrote to the king, to acquaint him with the
actual state of things. He besought his master to deal mercifully with the
conquered people, and thus afford him the means of redeeming the pledges he had
given for the favorable dispositions of the government. He made another
communication to the marquis of Los Velez, urging that nobleman to co-operate
with him in the same humane policy, as the one best suited to the interests of
the country. But his rival took a very different view of the matter; and he
plainly told the marquis of Mondejar, that it would require more than one
pitched battle yet to break the spirit of the Moriscoes; and that, since they
thought so differently on the subject, the only way left was for each commander
to take the course he judged best.
Unfortunately, there were others men, too, of influence at the
court who were of the same stern way of thinking as the marquis of Los
Velez; men acting under the impulse of religious bigotry, of implacable hatred
of the Moslems, and of a keen remembrance of the outrages they had committed.
There were others who, more basely, thought only of themselves and of the
profit they should derive from the continuance of the war.
Among those of the former class was the president Deza, with the members of
the Audience and the civil authorities in Granada. Always viewing the
proceedings of the captain-general with an unfriendly eye, they loudly
denounced his policy to the king, condemning his ill-timed lenity to a crafty
race, who would profit by it to rally from their late disasters and to form new
plans of rebellion. It was not right, they said, that outrages like those
perpetrated against both divine and human majesty should go
unpunished. Mondejar’s enemies did not stop here, but accused him of defrauding
the exchequer of its dues, the fifth of the spoils of war gained in battle from
the infidel. Finally, they charged him with having shown want of respect for
the civil authorities of Granada, in omitting to communicate to them his plan
of operations.
The marquis, advised by his friends at court of these malicious attempts to
ruin his credit with the government, dispatched a confidential envoy to Madrid,
to present his case before his sovereign and to refute the accusations of his
enemies. The charge of peculation seems to have made no impression on the mind
of a prince who would not have been slow to suspect, had there been any ground
for suspicion. There may have been stronger grounds for the complaint of want
of deference to the civil authorities of Granada. The best vindication of his
conduct in this particular must be found in the character and conduct of his
adversaries. From the first, Deza and the municipality had regarded him with
jealousy, and done all in their power to thwart his plans and circumscribe his
authority. It is only confidence that begets confidence. Mondejar, early
accustomed to command, was probably too impatient of opposition. He chafed
under the obstacles and annoyances thrown in his way by his narrow-minded
rivals. We have not the means before us of coming to a conclusive judgment on
the merits of the controversy, but from what we know of the marquis's accusers,
with the wily inquisitor at their head, we shall hardly err by casting our
sympathies into the scale of the frank and generous-hearted soldier, who, while
those that thus censured him were living at ease in the capital, had been
fighting and following up the enemy, amidst the winter's tempests and across
mountains covered with snow; and who, in little more than a month, without
other aid than the disorderly levies of the cities, had quelled a dangerous
revolt, and restored tranquility to the land.
Philip was greatly perplexed by the different accounts sent to him of the
posture of affairs in Granada. Mondejar's agent suggested to the council of
state that it would be well if his majesty would do as his father, Charles the
Fifth, would have done in the like case repair himself to the scene of
action, and observe the actual state of things with his own eyes. But the
suggestion found no favor with the minister, Espinosa, who affected to hold the
Moriscoes in such contempt, that a measure of this kind, he declared, would be
derogatory to the royal dignity. A better course would be for his majesty to
send some one as his representative, clothed with full powers to take charge of
the war, and of a rank so manifestly pre-eminent, that neither of the two
commanders now in the field could take umbrage at his appointment over their
heads.
This suggestion, as the politic minister doubtless had foreseen, was much
more to Philip's taste than that of his going in person to the scene of strife;
for, however little he might shrink from any amount of labor in the closet, he
had, as we have seen, a sluggish temperament, that indisposed him to much
bodily exertion. The plan of sending someone to represent the monarch at the
seat of war was accordingly approved; and the person selected for this
responsible office was Philip's bastard brother, Don John of Austria.
Rumors of what was going on in the cabinet at Madrid, reaching Granada from
time to time, were followed by the most mischievous consequences. The troops,
in particular, had no sooner learned that the marquis of Mondejar was about to
be superseded in the command, than they threw off the little restraint he had
been hitherto able to impose on them, and abandoned themselves to the violence
and rapine to which they were so well disposed, and which seemed now to be
countenanced by the president and the authorities in Granada. The very patrols
whom Mondejar had commissioned to keep the peace were the first to set the
example of violating it. They invaded the hamlets and houses they were sent to
protect, plundered them of their contents, and committed the foulest outrages
on their inmates. The garrisons in the principal towns imitated their example,
carrying on their depredations, indeed, on a still larger scale. Even the
capital, under the very eyes of the count of Tendilla, sent out detachments of
soldiers, who with ruthless violence trampled down the green plantations in the
valleys, sacked the villages, and dragged away the inhabitants from the midst
of their blazing dwellings into captivity.
It was with the deepest indignation that the marquis of Mondejar saw the
fine web of policy he had been so busily contriving thus wantonly rent asunder
by the very hands that should have protected it. He now longed as ardently as
any in the province for the coming of someone entrusted with authority to
enforce obedience from the turbulent soldiery; a task of still greater
difficulty than the conquest of the enemy. While such was the state of things,
an event occurred in Granada which, in its general character, may remind one of
some of the most atrocious scenes of the French Revolution.
In the beginning of the troubles, the president had caused a number of
Moriscoes, amounting to not less than a hundred and fifty, it is said, to be
arrested and thrown into the prison of the Chancery. Certain treasonable
designs, of which they had been suspected for a long time, furnished the feeble
pretext for this violent proceeding. Some few, indeed, were imprisoned for
debt. But the greater number were wealthy men, who enjoyed the highest
consideration among their countrymen. They had been suffered to remain in
confinement during the whole of the campaign; thus serving, in some sort, as
hostages for the good behavior of the people of the Albaicin.
Early in March, a rumor was circulated that the mountaineers, headed by
Aben-Humeya, whose father and brother were among the
prisoners, were prepared to make a descent on the city by night, and, with the
assistance of the inhabitants of the Albaicin, to
begin the work of destruction by assaulting the prison of the Chancery and
liberating their countrymen. This report, readily believed, caused the greatest
alarm among the citizens, boding no good to the unhappy prisoners. On the
evening of the seventeenth, Deza received intelligence that lights had been
seen on some of the neighboring mountains, which seemed to be of the nature of
signals, as they were answered by corresponding lights in some of the houses in
the Albaicin. The assault, it was said, would
doubtless be made that very night. The president appears to have taken no
measures for the protection of the city, but, on receiving the information, he
at once communicated it to the alcayde of the prison, and directed him to
provide for the security of his prisoners. The alcayde lost no time in
gathering his friends about him, and caused arms to be distributed among a body
of Spaniards, of whom there appears to have been a considerable number confined
in the place at this time. Thus prepared, they all remained, as in silent
expectation of some great event.
At length, sometime before midnight, the guard posted in the Campana, one
of the towers of the Alhambra, struck the bell with a succession of rapid
strokes, such as were used to give an alarm. In a moment every Spaniard in the
prison was on his feet; and, the alcayde throwing open the doors and leading
the way, they fell at once on their defenseless victims, confined in another
quarter of the building. As many of these were old and infirm, and most of them
inoffensive citizens, whose quiet way of life had little fitted them for brawl
or battle, and who were now destitute of arms of any kind, they seemed to be as
easy victims as the sheep into whose fold the famishing wolves have broken in
the absence of the shepherd. Yet they did not give up their lives without an
effort to save them. Despair lent them strength, and snatching up chairs,
benches, or any other article of furniture in their cells, they endeavored to
make good their defense against the assailants. Some, exerting a vigor which
despair only could have given, succeeded in wrenching stones from the walls or
iron bars from the windows, and thus supplied themselves with the means, not
merely of defense, but of doing some mischief to the assailants in their turn.
They fought, in short, like men who are fighting for their lives. Some,
however, losing all hope of escape, piled together a heap of mats, bedding, and
other combustibles, and, kindling them with their torches, threw themselves
into the flames, intending in this way to set fire to the building, and to
perish in one general conflagration with their murderers. But the flames they
had kindled were soon extinguished in their own blood, and their mangled
remains were left to blacken among the cinders of their funeral pile.
For two hours the deadly conflict between parties so unequally matched had
continued; the one shouting its old war-cry of "Saint Iago," as if
fighting on an open field; the other, if we may take the Castilian account,
calling on their prophet to come to their assistance. But no power, divine or
human, interposed in their behalf; and, notwithstanding the wild uproar caused
by men engaged in a mortal struggle, by the sound of heavy blows and falling
missiles, by the yells of the victors and the dying moans and agonies of the
vanquished, no noise to give token of what was going on if we are to
credit the chroniclers found its way beyond the walls of the prison. Even
the guard stationed in the court-yard, we are assured, were not roused from
their slumbers.
At length some rumor of what was passing reached the city, where the story
ran that the Moriscoes were in arms against their keepers, and would soon
probably get possession of the gaol. This report was
enough for the people, who, roused by the alarm-bell, were now in a state of
excitement that disposed them to any deed of violence. Snatching up their
weapons, they rushed, or rather flew, like vultures snuffing the carrion from
afar, to the scene of slaughter. Strengthened by this reinforcement, the
assailants in the prison soon completed the work of death; and, when the
morning light broke through the grated windows, it disclosed the full extent of
the tragedy. Of all the Moriscoes only two had escaped, the father and
brother of Aben-Humeya, over whom a guard had been
especially set. Five Spaniards were slain, and seventeen wounded; showing the
fierce resistance made by the Moslems, though destitute of arms.
Such was the massacre in the prison of the Chancery of Granada, which, as
already intimated, nowhere finds a more fitting parallel than in the murders
perpetrated on a still larger scale during the French Revolution, in the famous
massacres of September. But the miscreants who perpetrated these enormities
were the tools of a sanguinary faction, that was regarded with horror by every
friend of humanity in the country. In Granada, on the other hand, it was the
government itself, or at least those of highest authority in it, who were
responsible for the deed. For who can doubt that a proceeding, the success of
which depended on the concurrence of so many circumstances as to preclude the
idea of accident, must have been countenanced, if not contrived, by those who
had the direction of affairs?
Another feature, not the least striking in the case, is the apathy shown by
contemporary writers, men who on more than one occasion have been willing
to testify their sympathy for the sufferings of the Moriscoes. One of these
chroniclers, after telling the piteous tale, coolly remarks that it was a good
thing for the alcayde of the prison, who pocketed a large sum of money which
had been found on the persons of the wealthy Moors. Another, after noticing the
imputation of an intended rising on the part of the prisoners as in the highest
degree absurd, dismisses the subject by telling us that “the Moriscoes were a
weak, scatter-brained race, with just wit enough to bring on themselves such
a mishap”,—as he pleasantly terms the massacre. The government of
Madrid received the largest share of the price of blood. For when the wives and
families of the deceased claimed the inheritance of their estates, in some
cases very large, their claims were rejected—on what grounds we are not told—by
the alcaldes of the Court of Audience in Granada, and the estates were
confiscated to the use of the crown. Such a decision, remarks a chronicler, may
lead one to infer that the prisoners had been guilty of even more heinous
offences than those commonly imputed to them. The impartial reader will
probably come to a very different conclusion; and since it was the opulent
burghers who were thus marked out for destruction, he may naturally infer that
the baser passion of avarice mingled with the feelings of fear and hatred in
bringing about the massacre.
However this may be, so foul a deed placed an impassable gulf between the Spaniards
and the Moriscoes. It taught the latter that they could no longer rely on their
perfidious enemy, who, while he was holding out to them one hand in token of
reconciliation, was raising the other to smite them to the ground. A cry of
vengeance ran through all the borders of the Alpujarras. Again the mountaineers
rose in arms. They cut off stragglers, waylaid the patrols whom Mondejar had
distributed throughout the country, and even menaced the military posts of the
Spaniards. On some occasions, they encountered the latter with success in the
open field, and in one instance defeated and slew a large body of Christians,
as they were returning from a foray laden with plunder. Finally they invited
Aben-Humeya to return and resume the command,
promising to stand by him to the last. The chief obeyed the call and, leaving
his retreat in the Sierra Nevada, again took possession of his domains, and,
planting his blood-red flag on his native hills, soon gathered around him a
more formidable host than before. He even affected a greater pomp than he had
before displayed. He surrounded himself with a body-guard of four hundred
arquebusiers. He divided his army into battalions and companies, and endeavored
to introduce into it something of the organization and tactics of the
Spaniards. He sent his brother Abdallah to Constantinople, to represent his
condition to the Sultan, and to implore him to make common cause with his
Moslem brethren in the Peninsula. In short, rebellion assumed a more audacious
front than at any time during the previous campaign; and the Christians of
Andalusia and Granada looked with the greatest anxiety for the coming of a
commander possessed of sufficient authority to infuse harmony into the counsels
of the rival chiefs, to enforce obedience from the turbulent soldiery, and to
bring the war to a speedy conclusion.
CHAPTER
XLII. 1569.
As Don John of Austria is to occupy an important place, not only in the war
with the Moriscoes, but in some of the most memorable scenes in the remainder
of this history, it will be proper to acquaint the reader with what is known of
the earlier part of his career. Yet it is precisely over this part of it that a
veil of mystery hangs, which no industry of the historian has been able wholly
to remove.
It seems probable that he was born in the year 1547. The twenty-fourth of
February is assigned by common consent—I hardly know on what ground—as the day
of his birth. It was also, it may be remembered, the birthday of his father,
Charles the Fifth. His mother, Barbara Blomberg, was an inhabitant of Ratisbon,
in Germany. She is described as a beautiful young girl, who attracted the
emperor's notice several years after the death of the empress Isabella. The
Spanish chroniclers claim a noble descent for Barbara. Indeed, it would go hard
but a Spaniard could make out a pedigree for his hero. Yet there are several
circumstances which suggest the idea that the mother of Don John must have
occupied a very humble position.
Subsequently to her connection with Charles she married a German named Kegell, on whom the emperor bestowed the office of
commissary. The only other notice, so far as I am aware, which Charles took of
his former mistress was the settlement on her of a yearly pension of two
hundred florins, which he made the day before his death. It was certainly not a
princely legacy, and infers that the object of it must have been in a humble
condition in life to have rendered it important to her comfort. We are led to
the same conclusion by the mystery thrown around the birth of the child,
forming so strong a contrast to the publicity given to the birth of the
emperor's natural daughter, Margaret of Parma, whose mother could boast that in
her veins flowed some of the best blood of the Netherlands.
For three years the boy, who received the name of Geronimo, remained under
his mother's roof, when, by Charles's order, he was placed in the hands of a
Fleming, named Maffi, a musician in the imperial band. This man transferred his
residence to Leganes, a village in Castile, not far from Madrid. The instrument
still exists that contains the agreement by which Maffi, after acknowledging
the receipt of a hundred florins, engages for fifty florins annually, to bring
up the child with as much care as if he were his own. It was a moderate
allowance, certainly, for the nurture of one who was some day to come before
the world as the son of an emperor. It showed that Charles was fond of a
bargain, though at the expense of his own offspring.
No instruction was provided for the child except such as he could pick up
from the parish priest, who, as he knew as little as Maffi did of the secret of
Geronimo's birth, probably bestowed no more attention on him than on the other
lads of the village. And we cannot doubt that a boy of his lively temper must
have preferred passing his days in the open fields, to confinement in the house
and listening to the homilies of his teacher. As he grew in years, he
distinguished himself above his young companions by his courage. He took the
lead in all their rustic sports, and gave token of his belligerent propensities
by making war on the birds in the orchards, on whom he did great execution with
his little crossbow.
Four years were passed in this hardy way of life, which, if it did nothing
else for the boy, had the advantage of strengthening his constitution for the
serious trials of manhood, when the emperor thought it was time to place him in
a situation where he would receive a better training than could be found in the
cottage of a peasant. He was accordingly transferred to the protection of Luis
Quixada, Charles's trusty majordomo, who received the child into his family at
Villagarcia, in the neighborhood of Valladolid. The emperor showed his usual
discernment in the selection of a guardian for his son. Quixada, with his zeal
for the faith, his loyalty, his nice sentiment of honour,
was the very type of the Castilian hidalgo in his best form; while he possessed
all those knightly qualities which made him the perfect mirror of the antique
chivalry. His wife, Doña Magdalena de Ulloa, sister of the marquis of Mota, was
a lady yet more illustrious for her virtues than for her rank. She had
naturally the most to do with the training of the boy's earlier years; and
under her discipline it was scarcely possible that one of so generous a nature
should fail to acquire the courtly breeding and refinement of taste which shed
a luster over the stern character of the soldier.
However much Quixada may have reposed on his wife's discretion, he did not
think proper to try it, in the present instance, by communicating to her the
secret of Geronimo's birth. He spoke of him as the son of a great man, his dear
friend, expressing his desire that his wife would receive him as her own child.
This was the less difficult, as Magdalena had no children of her own. The
solicitude shown by her lord may possibly have suggested to her the idea that
the boy was more nearly related to him than he chose to acknowledge,—in short,
that he was the offspring of some intrigue of Quixada previous to his marriage.
But an event which took place not long after the child's introduction into the
family, is said to have awakened in her suspicions of an origin more in
accordance with the truth. The house at Villagarcia took fire; and, as it was
in the night, the flames gained such head that they were not discovered till
they burst through the windows. The noise in the street roused the sleeping
inmates; and Quixada, thinking first of his charge, sprang from his bed, and,
rushing into Geronimo's apartment, snatched up the affrighted child, and bore
him in his arms to a place of safety. He then reentered the house, and, forcing
his way through the smoke and flames, succeeded in extricating his wife from
her perilous situation. This sacrifice of love to loyalty is panegyrized by a
Castilian chronicler as "a rare achievement, far transcending any act of
heroism of which antiquity could boast." Whether Magdalena looked with the
same complacency on the proceeding we are not informed. Certain it is, however,
that the interest shown by her husband in the child had no power to excite any
feeling of jealousy in her bosom. On the contrary, it seemed rather to
strengthen her own interest in the boy, whose uncommon beauty and affectionate
disposition soon called forth all the tenderness of her nature. She took him to
her heart, and treated him with all the fondness of a mother,—a feeling warmly
reciprocated by the object of it, who, to the day of his death, regarded her
with the truest feelings of filial love and reverence.
In 1558, the year after his retirement to Yuste, Charles the Fifth, whether
from a wish to see his son, or, as is quite as probable, in the hope of making
Quixada more contented with his situation, desired his major-domo to bring his
family to the adjoining village of Cuacos. While
there, the young Geronimo must doubtless sometimes have accompanied his mother,
as he called Doña Magdalena, in her visits to the monastery. Indeed, his
biographer assures us that the sight of him operated like a panacea on the emperor's
health. We find no allusion to him, however, in any of the letters from Yuste;
and, if he did go there, we may be sure that Charles had sufficient control
over himself not to betray, by any indiscreet show of fondness, his
relationship to the child. One tradition respecting him lingered to a late
period among the people of Cuacos, where the
peasants, it is said, pelted him with stones as he was robbing their orchards.
It was the first lesson in war of the future hero of Lepanto.
There is no reason to doubt that the boy witnessed the obsequies of the
emperor. One who was present tells us that he saw him there, dressed in full
mourning, and standing by the side of Quixada, for whose page he passed among
the brethren of the convent. We may well believe that a spectacle so solemn and
affecting as these funeral ceremonies must have sunk deep into his young mind,
and heightened the feelings of veneration with which he always regarded the
memory of his father. It was, perhaps, the appearance of Geronimo as one of the
mourners that first suggested the idea of his relationship to the emperor. We
find a letter from Quixada to Philip, dated soon after, in which he speaks of rumors
on the subject as current in the neighborhood.
Among the testamentary papers of Charles was found one in an envelope
sealed with his private seal, and addressed to his son Philip, or in case of
his death, to his grandson Carlos, or whoever might be in possession of the
crown. It was dated in 1554, before his retirement to Yuste. It acknowledged
his connection with a German maiden, and the birth of a son named Geronimo. The
mother's name was not given. He pointed out the quarter where information could
be got respecting the child, who was then living with the violin-player at
Leganes. He expressed the wish that he should be trained up for the
ecclesiastical profession, and that, when old enough, he should enter a convent
of one of the reformed orders. Charles would not, however, have any constraint
put on the inclinations of the boy, and in case of his preferring a secular
life, he would have a suitable estate settled on him in the kingdom of Naples,
with an annual income of between thirty and forty thousand ducats. Whatever
course Geronimo might take, the emperor requested that he should receive all
the honor and consideration due to him as his son. His letter concluded by
saying that, although for obvious reasons he had not inserted these directions
in his will, he wished them to be held of the same validity as if he had.
Philip seems from the first to have so regarded them, though, as he was then in
Flanders, he resolved to postpone the public acknowledgment of his brother till
his return to Spain.
Meanwhile, the rumors in regard to Geronimo's birth had reached the ears of
the regent, Joanna. With natural curiosity, she ordered her secretary to write
to Quixada and ascertain the truth of the report. The trusty hidalgo endeavored
to evade the question, by saying that some years since a friend of his had
entrusted a boy to his care; but as no allusion whatever was made to the child
in the emperor's will, the story of their relationship to each other should be
treated as idle gossip. The reply did not satisfy Joanna, who seems to have
settled it in her own mind that the story was well founded. She took an
occasion soon after to write to Doña Magdalena, during her husband's absence
from home, expressing her wish that the lady would bring the boy where she
could see him. The place selected was at an auto de fe about
to be celebrated in Valladolid. Doña Magdalena, reluctant as she was, felt
herself compelled to receive the request from such a source as a command, which
she had no right to disobey. One might have thought that a ceremony so
heartrending and appalling in its character as an auto de fe would be the last to be selected for the
indulgence of any feeling of a light and joyous nature. But the Spaniard of
that and of a much later age regarded this as the sweetest sacrifice that could
be offered to the Almighty; and he went to it with the same indifference to the
sufferings of the victim—probably with the same love of excitement—which he
would have felt in going to a bull-fight.
On the day which had been named, Magdalena and her charge took their seats
on the carpeted platform reserved for persons of rank, in full view of the
scaffold appropriated to the martyrs who were to suffer for conscience' sake.
It was in the midst of the august company here assembled, that the son of
Charles the Fifth was to receive his first lesson in the school of persecution;
that he was to learn to steel his heart against sympathy with human suffering;
to learn, above all, that compassion for the heretic was a crime of the deepest
dye. It was a terrible lesson for one so young—of an age when the mind is most
open to impressions; and the bitter fruits of it were to be discerned ere long
in the war with the Moriscoes.
As the royal train approached the place occupied by Doña Magdalena, the
regent paused and looked around for the boy. Magdalena had thrown her mantle
about him, to conceal him as much as possible from the public eye. She now drew
it aside; and Joanna looked so long and earnestly on the child, that he shrunk
abashed from her gaze. It was not, however, before she had recognized in his
bright blue eyes, his ample forehead, and the rich yellow locks that clustered
round his head, some of the peculiarities of the Austrian line, though happily
without the deformity of the protruding lip, which was no less its
characteristic. Her heart yearned with the tenderness of a sister, as she felt
convinced that the same blood flowed in his veins as in her own; and, stooping
down, she threw her arms around his neck, and, kissing him, called him by the
endearing name of brother. She would have persuaded him to go with her and sit
by her side, but the boy, clinging closely to his foster-mother, refused to
leave her for the stranger lady.
This curious scene attracted the attention of the surrounding spectators,
which was hardly diverted from the child by the appearance of the prisoners on
the scaffold to receive their sentences. When these had been pronounced, and
the wretched victims led away to execution, the multitude pressed so eagerly
round Magdalena and the boy, that it was with difficulty the guards could keep
them back, till the regent, seeing the awkwardness of their situation, sent one
of her train, the count of Osorno, to their relief; and that nobleman, forcing
his way through the crowd, carried off Geronimo in his arms to the royal
carriage.
It was not long before all mystery was dispelled by the public
acknowledgment of the child as the son of the emperor. One of the first acts of
Philip, after his return to Spain in 1559, was to arrange an interview with his
brother. The place assigned for the meeting was an extensive park, not far from
Valladolid, in the neighborhood of the convent of La Espina, a spot
much resorted to by the Castilian princes of the older time for the pleasures
of the chase.
On the appointed day, Quixada, richly dressed, and mounted on the best
horse in his stables, rode forth, at the head of his vassals, to meet the king,
with the little Geronimo, simply attired, and on a common palfrey, by his side.
They had gone but a few miles when they heard, through the woods, the sound of
horses' hoofs, announcing the approach of the royal cavalcade. Quixada halted,
and alighting, drew near to Geronimo, with much deference in his manner, and,
dropping on one knee, begged permission to kiss his hand. At the same time he
desired his ward to dismount, and take the charger which he had himself been
riding. Geronimo was sorely bewildered by what he would have thought a merry
jest on the part of his guardian, had not his sedate and dignified character
forbidden the supposition. Recovering from his astonishment, he complied with
his guardian's directions; and the vision of future greatness must have flashed
on his mind, if, as we are told, when preparing to mount, he turned round to
Quixada, and with an affected air of dignity, told him that, "since things
were so, he might hold the stirrup for him."
They had not proceeded far when they came in sight of the royal party.
Quixada pointed out the king to his ward, adding that his majesty had something
of importance to communicate to him. They then dismounted; and the boy, by his
guardian's instructions, drawing near to Philip, knelt down and begged leave to
kiss his majesty's hand. The king, graciously extending it, looked intently on
the youth; and at length broke silence by asking "if he knew who was his
father." Geronimo, disconcerted by the abruptness of the question, and,
indeed, if the reports of his origin had ever reached his ears, ignorant of
their truth, cast his eyes on the ground and made no answer. Philip, not
displeased with his embarrassment, was well satisfied, doubtless, to read in
his intelligent countenance and noble mien an assurance that he would do no
discredit to his birth. Alighting from his horse, he embraced Geronimo,
exclaiming, "Take courage, my child, you are descended from a great man.
The emperor Charles the Fifth, now in glory, is your father as well as
mine." Then, turning to the lords who stood around, he presented the boy
to them as the son of their late sovereign, and his own brother. The courtiers,
with the ready instinct of their tribe, ever prompt to worship the rising sun,
pressed eagerly forward to pay their obeisance to Geronimo. The scene was
concluded by the king's buckling a sword on his brother's side, and throwing
around his neck the sparkling collar of the Golden Fleece.
The tidings of this strange event soon spread over the neighborhood, for
there were many more witnesses of the ceremony than those who took part in it;
and the king and his retinue found, on their return, a multitude of people
gathering along the route, eager to get a glimpse of this newly discovered gem
of royalty. The sight of the handsome youth called forth a burst of noisy
enthusiasm from the populace, and the air rang with their tumultuous vivas as the royal party rode through the
streets of the ancient city of Valladolid. Philip expressed his satisfaction at
the events of the day, by declaring that "he had never met better sport in
his life, or brought back game so much to his mind."
Having thus publicly acknowledged his brother, the king determined to
provide for him an establishment suited to his condition. He assigned him for
his residence one of the best mansions in Madrid. He was furnished with a
numerous band of retainers, and as great state was maintained in his household
as in that of a prince of the blood. The count of Priego acted as his chief
major-domo; Don Luis Carrillo, the eldest son of that noble, was made captain
of the guard; and Don Luis de Córdova master of the horse. In short, nobles and
cavaliers of the best blood in Castile did not disdain to hold offices in the
service of the peasant boy. With one or two exceptions, of little importance,
he enjoyed all the privileges that belonged to the royal infantes.
He did not, like them, have apartments in the palace; and he was to be
addressed by the title of "Excellency," instead of
"Highness," which was their peculiar prerogative. The distinction was
not always scrupulously observed.
A more important change took place in his name, which from Geronimo was
now converted into John of Austria,—a lofty name, which intimated
his descent from the imperial house of Hapsburg, and on which his deeds in
after-life shed a luster greater than the proudest title that sovereignty could
confer.
Luis Quixada kept the same place after his pupil's elevation as before. He
continued to be his ayo, or governor, and
removed with Doña Magdalena to Madrid, where he took up his residence in the
house of Don John. Thus living in the most intimate personal relations with
him, Quixada maintained his influence unimpaired till the hour of his own
death.
Philip fully appreciated the worth of the faithful hidalgo, who was
fortunate in thus enjoying the favor of the son in as great a degree as he had
done that of the father,—and, as it would seem, with a larger recompense for
his services. He was master of the horse to Don Carlos, the heir to the crown;
he held the important post of president of the Council of the Indies; and he
possessed several lucrative benefices in the military order of Calatrava. In
one of his letters to the king, we find Quixada remarking that he had endeavored
to supply the deficiencies of his pupil's early education by training him in a
manner better suited to his destinies in after-life. We cannot doubt that, in
the good knight's estimate of what was essential to such a training, the
exercises of chivalry must have found more favor than the monastic discipline
recommended by the emperor. However this may have been, Philip resolved to give
his brother the best advantages for a liberal education by sending him to the
University of Alcalá, which, founded by the great Ximenes, a little more than a
century before, now shared with the older school of Salamanca the glory of
being the most famous seat of science in the Peninsula. Don John had for his
companions his two nephews, Don Carlos and Alexander Farnese, the son of Margaret
of Parma. They formed a triumvirate, each member of which was to fill a large
space in the pages of history; Don Carlos from his errors and misfortunes, and
the two others from their military achievements. They were all of nearly the
same age. Don John, according to a writer of the time, stood foremost among the
three for the comeliness, or rather beauty of his person, no less than for the
charm of his manners; while the soul was filled with those nobler qualities
which gave promise of the highest excellence.
His biographers tell us that Don John gave due attention to his studies,
but the studies which found most favor in his eyes were those connected with
the art of war. He was perfect in all chivalrous accomplishments; and he sighed
for some field on which he could display them. The knowledge of his real
parentage filled his soul with a generous ambition, and he longed by some
heroic achievement to vindicate his claim to his illustrious descent.
At the end of three years, in 1564, he left the university. The following
year was that of the famous siege of Malta; and all Christendom hung in
suspense on the issue of the desperate conflict, which a handful of warriors,
on their lonely isle, were waging against the whole strength of the Ottoman
empire. The sympathies of Don John were roused in behalf of the Christian
knights; and he resolved to cast his own fortunes into the scale with theirs,
and win his maiden laurels under the banner of the Cross. He did not ask the
permission of his brother. That he knew would be refused to him. He withdrew
secretly from the court, and with only a few attendants took his way to
Barcelona, whence an armament was speedily to sail, to carry succor to the
besieged. Everywhere on the route he was received with the respect due to his
rank. At Saragossa he was lodged with the archbishop, under whose roof he was
detained by illness. While there he received a letter from the king, who had
learned the cause of his departure, commanding him to return, as he was
altogether too young to take part in this desperate strife. Don John gave
little heed to the royal orders. He pushed on to Barcelona, where he had the
mortification to find that the fleet had sailed. He resolved to cross the
mountains and take ship at Marseilles. The viceroy of Catalonia could not
dissuade the hot-headed youth from his purpose, when another dispatch came from
court, in which Philip, in a more peremptory tone than before, repeated his
orders for his brother to return, under pain of his severe displeasure. A
letter from Quixada had warned him of the certain disgrace which awaited him,
if he continued to trifle with the royal commands. Nothing remained but to
obey; and Don John, disappointed in his scheme of ambition, returned to the
capital.
This adventure caused a great sensation throughout the country. The young
nobles and cavaliers about the court, fired by Don John's example, which seemed
like a rebuke on their own sluggishness, had hastened to buckle on their armor,
and follow him to the war. The common people, peculiarly sensible in Spain to
deeds of romantic daring, were delighted with the adventurous spirit of the
young prince, which gave promise that he was one day to take his place among
the heroes of the nation. This was the beginning of the popularity of John of
Austria with his countrymen, who in time came to regard him with feelings
little short of idolatry. Even Philip, however necessary he may have thought it
to rebuke the insubordination of his brother, must in his heart have been
pleased with the generous spirit he had exhibited. At least, the favor with
which he continued to regard the offender showed that the royal displeasure was
of no long continuance.
The sudden change in the condition of Don John might remind one of some
fairy tale, where the poor peasant boy finds himself all at once converted by
enchantment into a great prince. A wiser man than he might well have had his
head turned by such a rapid revolution of the wheel of fortune; and Philip may
naturally have feared that the idle dalliance of a court, to which his brother
was now exposed, might corrupt his simple nature and seduce him from the honorable
path of duty. Great, therefore, must have been his satisfaction, when he saw
that, far from this, the elevation of the youth had only served to give a wider
expansion to his views, and to fill his bosom with still higher and nobler
aspirations.
The discreet conduct of Don John in regard to his nephew, Don Carlos, when
the latter would have engaged him in his wild and impracticable schemes,
established him still more firmly in the royal favor.
In the spring of the year 1568, an opportunity occurred for Philip to
gratify his brother's ambition, by entrusting him with the command of a fleet
then fitting out, in the port of Carthagena, against the Barbary corsairs, who
had been making alarming depredations of late on the Spanish commerce. But,
while giving him this appointment, the king was careful to supply the lack of
experience in his brother by naming as second in command an officer in whose
abilities he perfectly confided. This was Antonio de Zuñiga y Requesens, grand
commander of St. James, an eminent personage, who will come frequently before
the reader in the progress of the narrative. Requesens, who at this time filled
the post of ambassador at Rome, was possessed of the versatility of talent so
important in an age when the same individual was often required to exchange the
duties of the cabinet for those of the camp. While Don John appeared before the
public as the captain of the fleet, the actual responsibility for the conduct
of the expedition rested on his lieutenant.
On the third of June, Don John sailed out of port, at the head of as brave
an armament as ever floated on the waters of the Mediterranean. The prince's
own vessel was a stately galley, gorgeously fitted up, and decorated with a
profusion of paintings, the subjects of which, drawn chiefly from ancient
history and mythology, were of didactic import, intended to convey some useful
lesson to the young commander. The moral of each picture was expressed by some
pithy maxim inscribed beneath it in Latin. Thus, to whatever quarter Don John
turned his eyes, they were sure to fall on some homily for his instruction; so
that his galley might be compared to a volume richly filled with illustrations,
that serve to impress the contents on the reader's memory.
The cruise was perfectly successful; and Don John, on his return to port,
some eight months later, might boast that, in more than one engagement, he had
humbled the pride of the corsairs, and so far crippled them that it would be
long before they could resume their depredations; that, in fine, he had
vindicated the honor of his country's flag throughout the Mediterranean.
His return to Madrid was welcomed with the honors of a triumph. Courtier
and commoner, men of all classes, in short, vied with each other in offering up
the sweet incense of adulation, filling his young mind with lofty visions of
the future, that beckoned him forward in the path of glory.
When the insurrection of the Moriscoes broke out in 1568, the eyes of men
naturally turned on Don John of Austria, as the person who would most likely be
sent to suppress it. But Philip thought it would be safer to trust the command
to those who, from their long residence in the neighborhood, were better
acquainted with the character of the country and of its inhabitants. When,
however, the dissensions of the rival chiefs made it necessary to send some one
invested with such powers as might enable him to overawe this factious spirit
and enforce greater concert of action, the council of state recommended Don
John to the command. Their recommendation was approved by the king, if, indeed,
it was not originally made at his suggestion.
Still the "prudent" monarch was careful not to invest his brother
with that independent command which the public supposed him to possess. On the
contrary, his authority was restricted within limits almost as narrow as those
which had curbed it in the Mediterranean. A council of war was appointed, by
whose opinions Don John was to be guided in every question of moment. In case
of a division of opinion, the question was to be referred to the decision of
Philip.
The chief members of this body, in whom the supreme power was virtually
lodged, were the marquis of Mondejar, who from this time does not appear to
have taken the field in person; the duke of Sessa, grandson of the great
captain, Gonsalvo de Córdova, and endowed with no
small portion of the military talent of his ancestor; the archbishop of
Granada, a prelate possessed of as large a measure of bigotry as ever fell to
the lot of a Spanish ecclesiastic; Deza, president of the Audience, who hated
the Moriscoes with the fierce hatred of an inquisitor; and, finally, Don John's
faithful ayo, Quixada, who had more
influence over him than was enjoyed by any other, and who had come to witness
the first of his pupil's campaigns, destined, alas! to be the closing one of
his own.
There could hardly have been a more unfortunate device than the contrivance
of so cumbrous a machinery as this council, opposed as it was, from its very
nature, to the dispatch so indispensable to the success of military operations.
The mischief was increased by the necessity of referring every disputed point
to the decision of the king. As this was a contingency that often occurred, the
young prince soon found almost as many embarrassments thrown in his way by his
friends as by his foes,—embarrassments which nothing but an uncommon spirit of
determination on his own part could have overcome.
On the sixth of April, 1569, Don John took leave of the king, then at
Aranjuez, and hastened towards the south. His coming was eagerly expected by
the inhabitants of Granada; by the Christians, from their hopes that it would
remedy the disorders in the army and bring the war to a speedy conclusion; by
the Moriscoes, from the protection they anticipated he would afford them
against the violence of the Spaniards. Preparations were made in the capital
for giving him a splendid reception. The programme of
the ceremonies was furnished by Philip himself. At some miles from the city,
Don John was met by the count of Tendilla, at the head of a small detachment of
infantry, wearing uniforms partly of the Castilian fashion, partly of the
Morisco,—presenting altogether a strange and picturesque spectacle, in which
silks, velvets, and rich embroidery floated gaily amidst the iron mail and
burnished weapons of the warrior. As the prince proceeded along his route, he
was met by a long train of ecclesiastical and civic functionaries, followed by
the principal cavaliers and citizens of Granada. At their head were the
archbishop and the president, the latter of whom was careful to assert his rank
by walking on the right of the prelate. Don John showed them both the greatest deference;
and as they drew near, he dismounted from his horse, and, embracing the two
churchmen, stood with hat in hand, for some moments, while conversing with
them. As their train came up, the president presented the most eminent persons
to the prince, who received them with that frank and graceful courtesy which
won the hearts of all who approached him. He then resumed his route, escorted
on either side by the president and the archbishop. The neighboring fields were
covered with spectators, and on the plains of Béyro he found a large body of troops, not less than ten thousand, drawn up to
receive him. As he approached, they greeted him with salvoes of musketry,
delivered with admirable precision. As Don John glanced over their beautiful
array, and beheld their perfect discipline and appointments, his eyes
brightened and his cheek flushed with a soldier's pride.
Hardly had he entered the gates of Granada, when he was surrounded by a
throng of women, who gathered about him in an attitude of supplication. They
were the widows, the mothers, and the daughters of those who had so miserably
perished in the massacres of the Alpujarras. They were clad in mourning, some
of them so scantily as too plainly to reveal their poverty. Falling on their
knees, with tears streaming from their eyes, and their words rendered almost
inarticulate by their sobs, they demanded justice,—justice on the murderers of
their kindred. They had seen their friends fall, they said, beneath the blows
of their executioners; but the pain with which their hearts were then rent was
not so great as what they now felt on learning that the cruel acts of these
miscreants were to go unpunished. Don John endeavored to calm their agitation
by expressions of the deepest sympathy for their misfortunes,—expressions of
which none who saw his countenance could doubt the truth; and he promised that
he would do all in his power to secure them justice.
A livelier scene awaited him as the procession held its way along the
streets of the ancient capital. Everywhere the houses were gaily decorated with
tapestries of cloth of gold. The multitude who thronged the avenues filled the
air with their loyal acclamations. Bright eyes glanced from balconies and
windows, where the noblest matrons and maidens of Granada, in rich attire, were
gathered to look upon the splendid pageant, and the young hero who was the
object of it. In this state he moved along until he reached the palace of the
Royal Audience, where, by the king's command, apartments had been sumptuously
fitted up for his accommodation.
The following day, a deputation waited on Don John from the principal
Moriscoes of the city, claiming his protection against the injuries and insults
to which they were exposed whenever they went abroad. They complained
especially of the Spanish troops quartered on them, and of the manner in which
they violated the sanctity of their dwellings by the foulest outrages. Don John
replied in a tone that expressed little of the commiseration which he had shown
to the female petitioners on the preceding day. He told the Moriscoes that he
had been sent to restore order to Granada, and that those who had proved loyal
would find themselves protected in all their rights. Those, on the contrary,
who had taken part in the late rebellion, would be chastised with unsparing rigor.
He directed them to state their grievances in a memorial, with a caution to set
down nothing which they could not prove, or it would go hard with them. The
unfortunate Moriscoes found that they were to expect such justice only as comes
from the hand of an enemy.
The first session of the council showed how defective was the system for
conducting the war. In the discussions that ensued, Mondejar remarked that the
contest, in his opinion, was virtually at an end; that the Moriscoes, for the
most part, were in so favorable a mood, that he would undertake, if the affair
were placed in his hands, to bring them all to submission in a very short time.
This proposal was treated with contempt by the haughty president, who denounced
them as a false-hearted race, on whose promises no one could rely. The war, he
said, would never be ended so long as the Moriscoes of the capital were allowed
to communicate with their countrymen in the mountains, and to furnish them with
secret intelligence respecting what was passing in the Christian camp. The
first step was to remove them all from Granada into the interior; the second,
to make such an example of the miscreants who had perpetrated the massacres in
the Alpujarras as should strike terror into the hearts of the infidels, and
deter them from any further resistance to authority. In this division of
opinion the members took different sides, according to the difference of their
tempers. The commander-in-chief and Quixada both leaned to Mondejar's opinion.
After a protracted discussion, it became necessary to refer the question to the
king, who was by no means distinguished for the promptness with which he came
to his conclusions. All this required much time, during which active operations
could not be resumed.
Yet Don John did not pass it idly. He examined the state of the works in
Granada and its neighborhood; he endeavored to improve the condition of the
army, and to quell the spirit of insubordination which had risen in some
portions of it; finally, he sent his commands for enforcing levies, not merely
in Andalusia and the adjoining provinces, but in Castile. The appeal was
successful; and the great lords in the south, more particularly, gathering
their retainers, hastened to Granada, to draw their swords under this popular
chieftain.
Meanwhile the delay was attended with most mischievous consequences, as it
gave the enemy time to recover from the disasters of the previous campaign.
Aben-Humeya had returned, as we have seen in the
former chapter, to his mountain throne, where he soon found himself in greater
strength than before. Even the "Moriscoes of the peace," as they were
called, who had resumed their allegiance to the crown, exasperated by the
outrages of the Spanish soldiery, and the contempt which they showed for the
safe-conduct of the marquis of Mondejar, now came in great numbers to Aben-Humeya's camp, offering their services, and promising to
stand by him to the last. Other levies he drew from Africa. The Moslem princes
to whom he had applied for succor, though refusing to embark openly in his
cause, as he had desired, allowed such of their subjects as chose to join his
standard. In consequence a considerable body of Barbary Moors crossed the sea,
and entered into the service of the Morisco chief. They were a fierce, intrepid
race, accustomed to a life of wild adventure, and possessing a better
acquaintance with military tactics than belonged to the Spanish mountaineers.
While strengthened by these recruits, Aben-Humeya drew a much larger revenue than formerly from his more extended domains. Though
showy and expensive in his tastes, he did not waste it all on the maintenance
of the greater state which he now assumed in his way of living. He employed it
freely in the pay of foreign levies, and in procuring arms and munitions for
his own troops; and he profited by his experience in the last campaign, and by
the example of his African mercenaries, to introduce a better system of tactics
among his Morisco warriors. The policy he adopted, as before, was to avoid
pitched battles, and to confine himself chiefly to the guerilla warfare,
better suited to the genius of the mountaineer. He fell on small detachments of
Spaniards, who were patrolling the country, cut off the convoys, and thus
greatly straitened the garrisons in their supplies. He made forays into the
Christian territories, penetrating even into the vega,
and boldly carried the war up to the walls of Granada.
His ravages in this quarter, it is true, did not continue long after the
arrival of Don John, who took effectual measures for protecting the capital
from insult. But the prince was greatly chagrined by seeing the rapid extension
of the Morisco domain. Yet he could take no decisive measures to check it until
the council had determined on some plan of operations. He was moreover fettered
by the king's orders not to take the field in person, but to remain and
represent him in Granada, where he would find enough to do in regulating the
affairs and providing for the safety of the city. Philip seems to have feared
that Don John's adventurous spirit would lead him to some rash act that might
unnecessarily expose him to danger. He appears, indeed, as we may gather from
numerous passages in his letters, to have been more concerned for the safety of
his brother than for the success of the campaign. He may have thought, too,
that it was better to trust the war to the hands of the veteran chief, the
marquis of Los Velez, who could boast so much larger experience than Don John,
and who had possessed the king with a high idea of his military talents.
This nobleman still held the command of the country east of the Alpujarras,
in which lay his own large property. He had, as we have seen, a hard and
arrogant nature, which could ill brook the paramount authority of the young
commander-in-chief, to whom he rarely condescended to write, preferring to make
his communications directly to the king. Philip, prompted by his appetite for
power, winked at this irregular proceeding, which enabled him to take a more
direct part in the management of affairs than he could otherwise have done. It
was a most injudicious step, and was followed, as we shall see, by disastrous
consequences.
The marquis, without waiting for orders, resolved to open the campaign by
penetrating into the Alpujarras with the small force he had under his command.
But a body of some four hundred troops, which he had caused to occupy the pass
of Ravaha, was cut off by the enemy, and the haughty chieftain reluctantly
obeyed the orders of Don John to abandon his design. Aben-Humeya's success encouraged him to attack the marquis in his new quarters at Verja. It was a well-concerted enterprise, but
unfortunately, before the time arrived for its execution, it was betrayed by a
prisoner to the Spanish commander. It consequently failed. Aben-Humeya penetrated into the heart of the town, where he
found himself in the midst of an ambuscade, and with difficulty, after a heavy
loss, effected his retreat. But if the victory remained with the Spaniards, the
fruits of it fell to the Moriscoes. The spirit shown by the Moslem prince gave
new life to his countrymen, and more than counterbalanced the effects of his
defeat. The rich and populous country of the Rio de Almanzora rose in arms. The marquis of Los Velez found it expedient to abandon his
present position, and to transfer his quarters to Adra, a seaport on the
Mediterranean, which would afford him greater facilities for receiving
reinforcements and supplies.
The spirit of insurrection now spread rapidly over other parts of the
Alpujarras, and especially along the sierra of Bentomiz, which stretches from the neighborhood of Alhama towards the south. Here the mountaineers, who had
hitherto taken no part in the troubles of the country, ranging themselves under
the crimson banner of Aben-Humeya, broke forth into
open rebellion. The inhabitants of Velez and of the more important city of
Malaga were filled with consternation, trembling lest the enemy should descend
on them from the mountains and deluge their streets with blood. They hastily
mustered the militia of the country, and made preparations for their defense.
Fortunately, at this conjuncture, they were gladdened by the sight of the
grand-commander, Requesens, who sailed into the harbor of Velez-Malaga with a
squadron from Italy, having on board several battalions of Spanish veterans,
who had been ordered home by the government to reinforce the army of the
Alpujarras. There were no better troops in the service, seasoned as they were
by many a hard campaign, and all under the most perfect discipline. The first
step of Requesens,—the same officer, it will be remembered, who had acted as
the lieutenant of Don John of Austria in his cruise in the Mediterranean,—was
to request of his young general the command of the expedition against the
rebels of Bentomiz. These were now gathered in great
force on the lofty table-land of Fraxiliana, where
they had strengthened the natural defenses of the ground by such works as
rendered the approach to it nearly impracticable. The request was readily
granted; and the grand-commander of St. James, without loss of time, led his
battalions into the heart of the sierra.
We have not space for the details. It is enough to say that the expedition
was one of the best-conducted in the war. The enemy made a desperate
resistance; and, had it not been for the timely arrival of the bold burghers of
Malaga, the grand-commander would have been driven from the field. The Morisco
women fought by the side of their husbands; and when all was lost, many threw
themselves headlong from the precipices rather than fall into the hands of the
Spaniards. Two thousand of the enemy were slain, and three thousand captives,
with an immense booty of gold, silver, jewels, and precious stuffs, became the
spoil of the victors. The spirit of rebellion was effectually crushed in the sierra of Bentomiz.
Yet it was not a bloodless victory. Full six hundred of the Christians fell
on the field of battle. The loss bore most heavily on the troops from Italy.
Nearly every captain in this valiant corps was wounded. The bloody roll
displayed, moreover, the name of more than one cavalier as distinguished for
his birth as for his bravery. Two thousand Moriscoes succeeded in making their
escape to the camp of Aben-Humeya. They proved a
seasonable reinforcement, for that chief was meditating an assault on Seron.
This was a strongly-fortified place, perched like an eagle's eyry on the
summit of a bold cliff that looked down on the Rio de Almanzora,
and commanded its formidable passes. It was consequently a most important post,
and at this time was held by a Spanish garrison under an officer named Mirones. Aben-Humeya sent a
strong detachment against it, intending to carry it by storm. But the Moriscoes
had no battering train, and, as it soon appeared, were little skilled in the
art of conducting a siege. It was resolved, therefore, to abandon the present
plan of operations, and to reduce the place by the slower but surer way of
blockade. Five thousand men, accordingly, sat down before the town on the 18th
of June, and effectually cut off all communication from abroad.
The garrison succeeded in conveying intelligence of their condition to Don
John, who lost no time in ordering Alonso de Carbajal to march with a body of
troops and a good supply of provisions to their relief. But, just after his
departure, Don John received information that the king had entrusted the
marquis of Los Velez with the defense of Seron. He, therefore, by Quixada's advice, countermanded his orders to Carbajal, and
directed him to return. That officer, who had approached within a short
distance of the place, reluctantly obeyed, and left Seron to its fate. The
marquis of Los Velez, notwithstanding the jealousy he displayed of the
interference of Don John in the affair, showed so little alacrity in providing
for the safety of the beleaguered fortress, that the garrison, reduced to
extremity, on the eleventh of July, surrendered on honorable terms. But no
sooner had they given up the place, than the victors, regardless of the terms
of capitulation, murdered in cold blood every male over twelve years of age,
and made slaves of the women and children. This foul act was said to have been
perpetrated by the secret command of Aben-Humeya. The
Morisca chief might allege, in vindication of his perfidy, that he had but
followed the lesson set him by the Spaniards.
The loss of Seron caused deep regret to the army. Nor could this regret be
mitigated by the reflection, that its loss was to be attributed not so much to
the valour of the Moslems as to the misconduct of
their own commanders, or rather to the miserable system adopted for carrying on
the war. The triumph of the Moriscoes, however, was greatly damped by the
intelligence which they had received, shortly before the surrender of Seron, of
disasters that had befallen their countrymen in Granada.
Philip, after much hesitation, had given his sanction to Deza's project for
the removal of the Moriscoes from the capital into the interior of the country.
The day appointed for carrying the measure into effect was the twenty-third of
June. A large body of troops, with the principal commanders, was secretly
assembled in the capital to enforce the execution of the plan. Meanwhile, rumors
were current that the Moriscoes in the city were carrying on a secret
communication with their countrymen in the Alpujarras; that they supplied the
mountaineers with arms and money; that the young men were leaving Granada to
join their ranks; finally, that a conspiracy had been planned for an assault on
the city, and even that the names of the leaders were given. It is impossible,
at this time, to say what foundation there was for these charges; but the
reader may recollect that similar ones had been circulated previous to the
barbarous massacre in the prison of the Chancery.
On the twenty-third of the month, on the eve of St John's, an edict was
published, commanding all the Morisco males in Granada between ten and sixty
years of age, to repair to the parish churches to which they respectively
belonged, where they were to learn their fate. The women were to remain some
time longer in the city, to dispose of the most valuable effects, such as could
not easily be transported. This was not difficult, at the low prices for which,
in their extremity, they were obliged to part with their property. We are left
in ignorance of the fate of the children, who, no doubt, remained in the hands
of the government, to be nurtured in the Roman Catholic faith.
Nothing could exceed the consternation of the Moriscoes on the publication
of this decree, for which, though so long suspended by a thread, as it were,
over their heads, they were wholly unprepared. It is not strange, as they
recalled the atrocious murders perpetrated in the prison of the Chancery, that
they should have been led to believe that nothing less than a massacre of the
whole Moorish population was now designed. It was in vain that the marquis of
Mondejar endeavored to allay their fears. They were somewhat comforted by the
assurance of the President Deza, given under his own hand, that their lives
were in no danger. But their apprehensions on this point were not wholly
quieted till Don John had pledged his royal word that no harm should come to
their persons; that, in short, the great object of the government was to secure
their safety. They then submitted without any attempt at resistance.
Resistance, indeed, would have been hardly possible, destitute as they were of
weapons or other means of defense, and surrounded on all quarters by the
well-armed soldiery of Castile. They accordingly entered the churches assigned
to them, at the doors of which strong guards were stationed during the night.
On the following morning the Moriscoes were marched out and formed into a
procession, which was to take its way to the great hospital in the suburbs.
This was a noble building, erected by the good Queen Isabella the Catholic, not
long after the Conquest. Here they were to stay till the arrangements were
completed for forming them into divisions according to their several places of
destination. It was a sad and solemn spectacle, that of this company of exiles,
as they moved with slow and uncertain step, bound together by cords, and
escorted, or rather driven along like a gang of convicts, by the fierce
soldiery. There they were, the old and the young, the rich and the poor, now,
alas! brought to the same level, the forms of most of them bowed down, less by the
weight of years than of sorrow, their hands meekly folded on their breasts,
their cheeks wet with tears, as they gazed for the last time on their beautiful
city, the sweet home of their infancy, the proud seat of ancient empire,
endeared to them by so many tender and glorious recollections.
The march was conducted in an orderly manner, with but a single
interruption, which, however, was near being attended by the most disastrous
consequences. A Spanish alguazil, offended at some
words that fell from one of the prisoners—for so they might be called—requited
him with a blow from his staff. But the youth whom he struck had the fiery
blood of the Arab in his veins. Snatching up a broken tile, he dealt such a
blow on the offender's head as nearly severed his ear from it. The act cost him
his life. He was speedily cut down by the Spaniards, who rushed to the
assistance of their wounded comrade. A rumor now went round that the Moriscoes
had attempted the life of Don John, whose dress resembled in its color that of
the alguazil. The passions of the soldiery were
roused. They flocked to the scene of violence, uttering the most dreadful
imprecations. Their swords and lances glittered in the air, and in a few
moments would have been sheathed in the bodies of their terrified victims.
Fortunately, the quick eye of Don John discerned the confusion. Surrounded
by a body-guard of arquebusiers, he was there in person to superintend the
removal of the Moriscoes. Spurring his horse forward into the midst of the
tumult, and showing himself to the troops, he exclaimed that no one had offered
him any harm. He called on them to return to their duty, and not to dishonor
him as well as themselves, by offering violence to innocent men, for whose
protection he had so solemnly pledged his word. The soldiers, abashed by the
rebuke of their young chief, and satisfied with the vengeance they had taken on
the offender, fell back into their ranks. The trembling Moriscoes gradually
recovered from their panic, the procession resumed its march, and without
further interruption reached the hospital of Isabella.
There the royal contadores were
not long in ascertaining the number of the exiles. It amounted to thirty-five
hundred. That of the women, who were soon to follow, was much greater. The
names, the ages, and the occupations of the men were all carefully registered.
The following day they were marched into the great square before the hospital,
where they were distributed into companies, each under a strong escort, to be
conducted to their various places of destination. These, far from being
confined to Andalusia, reached into New Castile. In this arrangement we may
trust that so much respect was paid to the dictates of humanity, as not to
separate those of the same kindred from one another. But the chroniclers give
no information on the subject; probably regarding details of this sort, in
regard to the fallen race, as below the dignity of history.
It was on the twenty-fifth of June, 1569, that, bidding a sad farewell to
the friends and companions of their youth, from whom they were now to be for
ever parted, they set forth on their doleful pilgrimage. The morning light had
broken on the red towers of the Alhambra, as the bands of exiles, issuing from
the gates of their beloved capital, the spot dearest to them upon earth, turned
their faces towards their new homes,—homes which many of them were destined
never to behold. The government, with shameful indifference, had neglected to
provide for the poor wanderers the most common necessaries of life. Some
actually perished of hunger by the way. Others, especially those accustomed
from infancy to a delicate nurture, sank down and died of fatigue. Some were
seized by the soldiers, whose cupidity was roused by the sight of their
helplessness, and were sold as slaves. Others were murdered by their guards in
cold blood. Thus reduced far below their original number, they reached their
appointed places, there to linger out the remainder of their days in the midst
of a population who held them in that abhorrence with which a good Catholic of
the sixteenth century regarded "the enemies of God."
But the evils which grew out of this stern policy of the government were
not wholly confined to the Moriscoes. This ingenious people were so far
superior to the Spaniards in the knowledge of husbandry, and in the various
mechanical arts, that they formed the most important part of the population of
Granada. The only art in which their rivals excelled them was that which
thrives at the expense of every other—the art of war. Aware of this, the
government had excepted some of the best artisans in the capital from the doom
of exile which had fallen on their countrymen, and they had accordingly
remained in the city. But their number was too small to produce the result
desired; and it was not long before the quarter of the town which had been
occupied by the Moriscoes exhibited a scene of woeful desolation. The light and
airy edifices, which displayed in their forms the fantastic graces of Arabian
architecture, fell speedily into decay. The parterres and pleasure-grounds,
filled with exotics, and glowing in all the exuberance of southern vegetation,
became a wilderness of weeds; and the court-yards and public squares, where
tanks and sparkling fountains, fed by the streams of the Sierra Nevada, shed a
refreshing coolness over the atmosphere in the sultriest months of summer, were
soon converted into a melancholy heap of rubbish.
The mischiefs growing out of the removal of the Moriscoes fell sorely on
the army. The men had been quartered, as we have seen, in the houses of the
Moriscoes. From the present occupants, for the most part needy and thriftless
speculators, they met with very different fare from what they had enjoyed under
the former wealthy and luxurious proprietors. The troops supplied the
deficiency, as far as they could, by plundering the citizens. Hence incessant
feuds arose between the people and the army, and a spirit of insubordination
rapidly grew up in the latter, which made it more formidable to its friends
than to its foes.
An eyewitness of these troubles closes his narrative of the removal of the
Moriscoes by remarking that it was a sad spectacle to one who reflected on the
former policy and prosperity of this ill-starred race; who had seen their
sumptuous mansions in the day of their glory, their gardens and
pleasure-grounds, the scene of many a gay revel and jocund holiday, and who now
contrasted all this with the ruin into which everything had fallen. "It
seems," he concludes, "as if Providence had intended to show, by the
fate of this beautiful city, that the fairest things in this world are the most
subject to decay." To the philosopher of the present age it may seem
rather the natural result of that system of religious intolerance which had
converted enemies those who, under a beneficent rule, would have been true and
loyal subjects, and who by their industry and skill would have added
incalculably to the resources of the country.
CHAPTER
XLIII. 1569.
While the events related in the preceding chapter were occurring, the marquis
of Los Velez lay, with a considerable force, at Adra, a port on the
Mediterranean, at the foot of the Alpujarras, which he had selected chiefly
from the facilities it would afford him for getting supplies for his army. In
this he was disappointed. Before the month of June had expired, his troops had
begun to be straitened for provisions. The evil went on increasing from day to
day. His levies, composed chiefly of raw recruits from Andalusia, were full of
that independent, and indeed turbulent spirit, which belongs to an
ill-disciplined militia. There was no lack of courage in the soldiery. But the
same men who had fearlessly braved the dangers of the campaign, now growing
impatient under the pinch of hunger, abandoned their colours in great numbers.
There were various causes for the deficiency of supplies. The principal one
of these may probably be found in the remissness of the council of war, several
of whose members regarded the marquis with an evil eye, and were not sorry to
see his embarrassments.
Some vigorous measures were instantly to be taken, or the army, it was
evident, would soon altogether melt away. By the king's command, orders were dispatched
to Requesens, who lay with his squadron off the port of Velez-Malaga, to supply
the camp with provisions, while it received reinforcements, as before,
principally from the Andalusian militia. The army received a still more
important accession in the well-disciplined veterans who had followed the
grand-commander from Italy. Thus strengthened, and provisioned for a week or
more, Los Velez, at the head of twelve thousand men, set forth on the
twenty-sixth of July, and struck at once into the Alpujarras. He had been
directed by the council to establish himself at Ugibar,
which, by its central position, would enable him to watch the movements of
Aben-Humeya, and act on any point as occasion
required.
The marquis, without difficulty, defeated a force of some five or six
thousand men, who had been stationed to oppose his entrance into the mountain
country. He then pressed forward, and on the high lands beyond Ugibar—which place he had already occupied—he came in sight
of Aben-Humeya, with the flower of his troops drawn
up to receive him.
The two chiefs, in their characters, their persons, and their equipments, might be considered as no bad types of the
European and the Arab chivalry. The marquis, sheathed in complete mail, of a
sable color, and mounted on his heavy war-horse, also covered with armor, was
to be seen brandishing a lance which, short and thick, seemed rather like a
truncheon, as he led his men boldly on, prepared to plunge at once into the
thick of the fight. He was the very emblem of brute force. Aben-Humeya, on the other hand, gracefully managing his
swift-footed, snow-white Andalusian, with his Morisco mantle of crimson
floating lightly from his shoulders, and his Turkish turban wreathed around his
head, instead of force, suggested the opposite ideas of agility and adroitness,
so characteristic of the children of the East.
Riding along his lines, the Morisco prince exhorted his followers not to
fear the name of Los Velez: for, in the hour of danger, God would aid His own;
and better was it, at any rate, to die like brave men in the field, than to
live dishonored. Notwithstanding these magnanimous words, it was far from Aben-Humeya's wish to meet his enemy in a fair field of fight.
It was contrary to the genius and the habit of his warfare, which was of the
guerilla kind, abounding in sallies and surprises, in which, seeking some
vulnerable point, he could deal his blow and retreat precipitately among the
mountains.
Yet his followers, though greatly inferior in numbers to the enemy, behaved
with spirit; and the field was well contested, till a body of Andalusian horse,
making a détour under cover of some
rising ground, fell unexpectedly on the rear of the Moriscoes, and threw them
into confusion. The marquis pressing them at the same time vigorously in front,
they broke, and soon gave way on all sides. Aben-Humeya,
perceiving the day lost, gave the rein to his high-mettled genet, who swiftly
bore him from the field; and, though hotly pursued, he soon left his enemies
behind. On reaching the foot of the Sierra Nevada, the chief dismounted, and
hamstringing his noble animal, plunged into the depths of the mountains, which
again opened their friendly arms to receive him. Yet he did not remain there
long before he was joined by his followers; and no sooner was he in sufficient
strength, than he showed himself on the eastern skirts of the sierra, whence, like an eagle stooping on his prey, he
rushed down upon the plains below, sweeping through the rich valley of the Rio
de Almanzora, and carrying fire and sword to the very
borders of Murcia. Here he revenged himself on Los Velez by falling on his town
of Las Cuevas, firing his dwellings, ravaging his estates, and rousing his
Morisco vassals to rebellion.
Meanwhile the marquis, instead of following up his victory, remained torpid
within the walls of Calahorra. Here he had desired the council to provide
stores for the subsistence of his army. To his dismay, none had been provided;
and as his own attempts to procure them were unsuccessful, he soon found
himself in the same condition as at Adra. The famine-stricken troops, with
little pay and less plunder, first became discontented, then mutinous, and at
length deserted in great numbers. It was in vain that the irascible old chief
poured out his wrath in menaces and imprecations. His arrogant temper had made
him hated even more than he was feared by his soldiers. They now went off, not
stealthily and by night, but in the open day, whole companies at a time, their
arquebuses on their shoulders, and their matches lighted. When Don Diego
Fajardo, the marquis's son, endeavored to stay them, one, more audacious than
the rest, lodged a musket-ball in his body. It was not long before the gallant
array with which the marquis had so proudly entered the Alpujarras, was reduced
to less than three thousand men. Among them were the Italian veterans, who
refused to tarnish their well-earned laurels by thus basely abandoning their
commander.
The council of war complained loudly to the king of the fatal inactivity of
the marquis, and of his neglect to follow up the advantages he had gained. Los
Velez angrily retorted by throwing the blame on that body, for neglecting to
furnish him with the supplies which would have enabled him to do so. Philip,
alarmed, with reason, at the critical aspect of affairs, ordered the marquis of
Mondejar to repair to court, that he might confer with him on the state of the
country. This was the avowed motive for his recall. But, in truth, it seems
probable that the king, aware of that nobleman's leaning to a pacific policy,
and of his personal hostility to Los Velez, deemed it best to remove him
altogether from any share in the conduct of the war. This he did most effectually,
by sending him into honorable exile, first appointing him Viceroy of Valentia,
and afterwards raising him to the important post of Viceroy of Naples. From
this period the name of Mondejar no more appears on the theatre of the Morisco
war.
The marquis did not win the favor to which he was entitled by his deserts.
He seems to have possessed some of the best qualities of a good captain. Bold
in action, he was circumspect in council. Slow and sagacious in the formation
of his plans, he carried them out with singular perseverance. He knew the
country well which was the seat of the insurrection, and perfectly understood
the character of its inhabitants. What was more rare, he made allowance for the
excesses into which they had been drawn by a long course of insult and oppression.
The humanity of his disposition combined with his views of policy to make him
rely more on conciliatory measures than on fear, for the reduction of the
enemy. How well this worked we have seen. Had he been properly supported by
those engaged with him in the direction of affairs, we can hardly doubt of his
ultimate success. But, unhappily, the two most prominent of these, the
President Deza and the Marquis of Los Velez, were narrow-minded, implacable
bigots, who, far from feeling compassion for the Moriscoes, looked on the whole
race as "God's enemies." Unfortunately, these views found favor with
the government; and Philip, who rightly thought that the marquis of Mondejar
would only prove a hindrance to carrying on hostilities with vigor, acted
consistently in sending him from the country. Yet, while he was thus removed
from the conduct of the war, it may be thought an unequivocal acknowledgment of
Mondejar's deserts, that he was transferred to the most considerable post in
the gift of the crown.
Before the marquis's departure, Philip had transferred his court to
Córdova, in order to facilitate his communication with the seat of war. He
hoped, too, that the knowledge of his being so near would place some check on
the disorderly temper of the soldiery, and animate them with more loyal and
patriotic feelings. In this way of proceeding he considered himself as
imitating the example of his great ancestors, Ferdinand and Isabella, who,
during the war of Granada, usually transferred their court to one of the
capitals of the South. He did not, however, think it necessary, like them, to
lead his armies in person, and share in the toils of the campaign.
On the nineteenth of October, Philip published an edict, which intimated
his design of following up the war with vigor. It commanded that such of the
Moriscoes as had hitherto been allowed to remain in Granada should now be
removed from it, in order that no means of communication might be left to them
with their brethren in the mountains. It was further proclaimed, that the war
henceforth was to be carried on with "fire and blood;" in other
words, that no mercy was to be shown the insurgents. This was the first
occasion on which this fierce denunciation had been made by the government. To
reconcile the militia of the towns to the service, their pay was to be raised
to a level with that of the Italian volunteers; and to relieve the towns, the
greater part of the expense was to be borne by the crown. Before the
publication of this ordinance the king had received intelligence of an event
unexpected alike by Christian and by Moslem—the death of Aben-Humeya, and that by the hands of some of his own followers.
The Morisco prince, after carrying the war up to the borders of Murcia,
laid siege to two or three places of strength in that quarter. As might have
been expected, he failed in these attempts, from his want of battering
artillery. Thus foiled, he led back his forces into the Alpujarras, and
established his quarters in the ancient Moorish palace of Lanjaron,
on the slopes of the mountains commanding the beautiful valley of Lecrin. Here the torpid condition of the Spaniards under
Los Velez allowed the young monarch to remain, and give himself up to those
sensual indulgences with which the Moslem princes of the East were apt to
solace their leisure in the intervals of war. His harem rivalled that of any
Oriental satrap in the number of its inmates. This was strange to the
Moriscoes, who, since their nominal conversion to Christianity, had of course
repudiated polygamy. In the eyes of the Moslems, it might pass for good
evidence of their prince's orthodoxy.
Ever since Aben-Humeya's ascent to the throne he
had been declining in popularity. His handsome person, the courtesy of his
manners, his chivalrous spirit, and his devotion to the cause, had easily won
him the affections of his subjects. But a too sudden elevation had unfortunately
that effect on him which it is wont to have on weak minds, without any settled
principles or lofty aim to guide them. Possessed of power, he became tyrannical
in the use of it. His arbitrary acts created enemies, not the less dangerous
that they were concealed. The consciousness of the wrongs he had committed made
him suspicious. He surrounded himself with a body-guard of four hundred men.
Sixteen hundred more were quartered in the place where he was residing; and the
principal avenues to it, we are told, were defended by barricades. Those whom
he suspected he treated with particular kindness. He drew them around his
person, overwhelmed them with favours, and, when he
had won them by a show of confidence, he struck the fatal blow. During the
short period of his reign, no less than three hundred and fifty persons, we are
assured, fell victims to his jealousy or his revenge.
Among Aben-Humeya's officers was one named Diego
Alguazil, who had a beautiful kinswoman, with whom he lived, it is said, on
terms of greater intimacy than was justified by the relationship of the
parties. As he was one day imprudently speaking of her to Aben-Humeya in the glowing language of a lover, the curiosity of
the king was so much inflamed by it that he desired to see her. In addition to
her personal charms, the fair Zahara was mistress of many accomplishments which
rendered her still more attractive. She had a sweet voice, which she
accompanied bewitchingly on the lute, and in her dancing displayed all the soft
and voluptuous movements of the dark-eyed beauties of Andalusia. When brought
before the king, she did her best to please him; for though attached, as it
seems, to her kinsman, the ambitious coquette had no objection to having a
royal suitor in her chains. In this she perfectly succeeded; and the enamored
prince intimated his desire to Alguazil that he would resign to him the
possession of his mistress. But the Morisco loved her too well; and neither
threats nor promises of the most extravagant kind were able to extort his
consent. Thus baffled, the reckless Aben-Humeya,
consulting only his passion, caused the perhaps not reluctant Zahara to be
taken by force and lodged in his harem. By this act he made a mortal enemy of
Alguazil.
Nor did he long enjoy the favor of his new mistress, who, come of an
ancient lineage in Granada, had hoped to share the throne of the Morisco
monarch. But Aben-Humeya's passion did not carry him
to this extent of complaisance; and Zahara, indignant at finding herself
degraded to the rank and file of the seraglio, soon breathed only a desire for
vengeance. In this state of things she found the means of communicating with
her kinsman, and arranged with him a plan for carrying their murderous intent
into execution.
The most important corps in the Morisco army was that of the Turkish
mercenaries. But they were so fierce and turbulent a race that Aben-Humeya paid dear for their services. A strong body of these
troops lay on the frontiers of Orgiba, under the
command of Aben-Aboo—a near relative of the Morisco
prince, whose life, it may be remembered, he had once saved by submitting to
every extremity of torture rather than betray his lurking-place. To this
commander Aben-Humeya dispatched a messenger,
directing him to engage the Turks in a certain expedition, which would serve
both to give them employment, and to satisfy their appetite for plunder.
The time named for the messenger’s departure was communicated by Zahara to
her kinsman, who caused him to be waylaid and murdered, and his dispatches to
be secured. He then had a letter written to Aben-Aboo,
which bore apparently the royal signature. This was counterfeited by his
nephew, a young man then holding the post of secretary to Aben-Humeya, with whom he had lately conceived some cause of
disgust. The letter stated that the insubordination of the Turks made them
dangerous to the state; and that in some way or other they must be removed, and
that speedily. With this view, Aben-Aboo was directed
to march them to Mecina, on the frontiers of the Sierra
Nevada, where he would be joined by Diego Alguazil, with a party of soldiers,
to assist him in carrying the plan into execution. The best mode, it was
suggested, of getting rid of the Turks, would be by poison.
This letter was dispatched by a courier, who was speedily followed by
Alguazil and a hundred soldiers, as the cunning conspirator desired to present
himself before Aben-Aboo without leaving him time for
consideration.
He found that commander in a state of the utmost perplexity and
consternation. Alguazil declared that he had come in consequence of certain
instructions he had received from the king, of too atrocious a nature for him
to execute. Aben-Aboo had as little mind to perform
the bloody work assigned to him. He had no distrust of the genuineness of the
letter. Hosceyn, the commander of the Turks,
happening to pass the house at that time, was called in, and the dispatches
were shown to him. The fiery chief insisted on communicating them to some of
his comrades. The greatest indignation prevailed among the Turkish leaders,
outraged by this base treachery of the very man whom they had come to serve at
the peril of their lives. They one and all demanded, not his deposition, but
his death. Diego Alguazil saw that his scheme was working well. He artfully
fanned the flame, and professed to share deeply in the indignation of the
Moslems. It was at length agreed to put the tyrant to death, and to offer the
crown to Aben-Aboo.
This chieftain enjoyed a high reputation for sagacity and prudence. His
passions, unlike those of Aben-Humeya, seemed ever
under the control of his reason; and, far from indulging an ill-regulated
ambition, he had been always faithful to his trust. But the present temptation
was too strong for his virtue. He may have thought that, since the throne was
to be vacant, the descendant of the Omeyas had a
better claim to it than any other. Whatever may have been the sophistry to
which he yielded, he knew that those who now promised him the crown had the
power to make their promise good. He gave his assent on condition that, in the
course of three months, his election should be confirmed by the dey of Algiers, as the representative of the Turkish
sultan.
Having arranged their plans, the conspirators lost no time in putting them
in execution. They set out that very hour, on the evening of the third of
October, for Lanjaron, with a body of four hundred
troops—one half being Turks, the other Moriscoes. By midnight they reached
their place of destination. Diego Alguazil and the Turkish captains were too
well known as enjoying the confidence of Aben-Humeya to meet with any opposition to their entrance into the town. Nor, though the
Morisco king had retired to rest, did the guard oppose any difficulty to their
passing into his dwelling. Proceeding to his chamber, they found the doors
secured, but speedily forced an entrance. Neither arm nor voice was raised in
his defense.
Aben-Humeya, roused from sleep by the tumult,
would have sprung from his couch; but the faithless Zahara held him fast in her
embrace, until Diego Alguazil and some others of the conspirators, rushing in,
bound his arms together with a Moorish veil. Indeed, he was so much bewildered
as scarcely to attempt resistance.
The Turkish commander then showed him the letter. Aben-Humeya recognized the writing of his secretary, but declared that he had never
dictated such a letter, nor was the signature his. How far his assertion gained
credit we are not informed. But the conspirators had already gone too far to be
forgiven. To recede was death. Either Aben-Humeya or
they must be sacrificed. It was in vain that he protested his innocence, and
that he offered to leave the question to the sultan, or to the dey of Algiers, or to any person competent to decide it.
But little heed was given to his protestations, as the conspirators dragged him
into an adjoining apartment. The unhappy young man perceived that his hour was
come—that there was no one of all his friends or menials to interpose between
him and his fate. From that moment he changed his tone, and assumed a bearing
more worthy of his station. "They are mistaken," he said, "who
suppose me to be a follower of the Prophet. I die, as I have lived, in the
Christian faith. I accepted the post of head of the rebellion that I might the
better avenge the wrongs heaped on me and my family by the Spaniards. They have
been avenged in full measure, and I am now ready to die. Neither," said
he, turning to Aben-Aboo, his destined successor,
"do I envy you. It will not be long before you will follow me." He
then, with his own hands, coolly arranged around his neck the cord with which
he was to be strangled, adjusted his robes, and, covering his face with his
mantle, submitted himself without a struggle to his executioners.
His body was thrown into a neighboring sewer, with as little concern as if
it had been that of a dog. There it continued, till Don John of Austria,
hearing that Aben-Humeya had died a Christian, caused
his remains to be removed to Guadix, and laid in the
ground with the solemnities of Christian burial.
That Aben-Humeya should have come to so miserable
an end is not strange. The recklessness with which he sacrificed all who came
between him and the gratification of his passions, surrounded him with enemies,
the more dangerous in a climate where the blood is hot, and the feeling of
revenge is easily kindled in the bosom. At the beginning of his reign his showy
qualities won him a popularity which, however, took no root in the affections
of the people, and which faded away altogether when the defects of his character
were more fully brought to light by the exigencies of his situation; for he was
then found to possess neither the military skill necessary to insure success in
the field, nor those higher moral attributes which command respect and
obedience at home.
Very different was the character of his successor, Aben-Aboo.
Instead of displaying the frivolous and licentious tastes of Aben-Humeya, his private life was without reproach. He was much
older than his predecessor; and if he had not the same fiery enthusiasm and
dashing spirit of adventure which belonged to Aben-Humeya,
he discovered both forecast in the formation of his plans, and singular courage
in carrying them into execution. All confided in his integrity; while the
decorum and gravity of his demeanor combined with the more substantial
qualities of his character to inspire a general feeling of reverence in the
people. It was not till the time of his proposed elevation to the supreme
power, that the luster of these qualities was darkened by the perpetration of
one foul deed,—his connivance at the conspiracy against his sovereign. But if
he were really the dupe, as we are told, of Alguazil's plot, he might plead, to some extent, the necessity of self-preservation; for
he may well have believed that, if he refused to aid Aben-Humeya in the execution of his bloody purpose in reference to the Turks, the tyrant
would not long suffer him to live in possession of a secret so perilous to
himself. At all events, the part he had taken in the conspiracy seems to have
given no disgust to the people, who, weary of the despotism under which they
had been living, welcomed with enthusiasm the accession of the new sovereign.
Many places which had hitherto taken no part in the struggle for independence,
now sent in their adhesion to Aben-Aboo, who soon
found himself the ruler over a wider extent of territory than, at any time, had
acknowledged the sway of his predecessor.
It was not long before the confirmation of his election arrived from
Algiers; and Aben-Aboo, assuming the regal name of
Muley Abdallah Mohammed as a prefix to his own, went through the usual simple
forms of a coronation of a king of Granada. In his right hand on this occasion,
he bore a banner inscribed with the legend, "More I could not desire—less
would not have contented me." Such an inscription maybe thought to
intimate that a more aspiring temper lurked within his bosom than the world had
given him credit for.
The new sovereign did not, like his predecessor, waste his time in
effeminate sloth. He busied himself with various important reforms, giving
especially a new organization to the army, and importing a large quantity of
arms and munitions from Barbary. He determined not to allow his men time for
discontent, but to engage them at once in active service. The first object he
proposed was the capture of Orgiba, a fortified
place, which commanded the route to Granada, and which served as a point of
communication between that capital and remoter parts of the country.
Aben-Aboo got everything in readiness with such dispatch,
that on the twenty-sixth of October, a few weeks only after the death of Aben-Humeya, he set out on his expedition at the head of a
well-appointed army, consisting of more than ten thousand men, partly foreign
mercenaries and partly natives. Hastening his march, he soon presented himself
before Orgiba, and laid siege to the place. He pushed
matters forward so vigorously, that in a few days he was prepared to storm the
works. Four times he brought his men to the assault; but though, on the fourth,
he succeeded in throwing himself, with a small body of troops, on the ramparts,
he was met with such determined resistance by the garrison and their brave
commander, Francisco de Molina, that he was obliged to fall back with loss into
his trenches. Thus repulsed, and wholly destitute of battering ordnance, the
Morisco chief found it expedient to convert the siege into a blockade.
The time thus consumed gave opportunity to Don John of Austria to send a
strong force, under the duke of Sesa, to the relief of the garrison. Aben-Aboo, desirous to intercept his enemy's march, and occupy
one of those defiles that would give him the advantage of position, silently
broke up his encampment, under cover of the night, and took the direction of Lanjaron. Here he came so suddenly on the advanced guard of
the Christians, that, taken by surprise, it gave way, and falling back, after
considerable loss, on the main body of the army, threw the whole into
confusion. Happily the duke of Sesa, though laboring at the time under a sharp
attack of gout, by extraordinary exertions was enabled to rally his men, and
inspire them with courage to repulse the enemy, thus retrieving his own honour and the fortunes of the day.
Meanwhile, the brave Molina and his soldiers no sooner learned that the
besiegers had abandoned their works, than, eager to profit by their temporary
absence, the cause of which they suspected, they dismantled the fortress, and,
burying their guns in the ground, hastily evacuated the place. The duke of
Sesa, finding that the great object of his expedition—the safety of the
garrison—was now accomplished, and not feeling himself in sufficient strength
to cope with the Morisco chief, instantly began his retreat on Granada. In this
he was not molested by Aben-Aboo, who was only too
glad to be allowed without interruption to follow up the siege of Orgiba. But, finding this place, to his surprise, abandoned
by the enemy, he entered it without bloodshed, and with colors flying, as a
conqueror.
These successes in the commencement of his reign furnished a brilliant
augury for the future. The fame of Aben-Aboo spread
far and wide through the country; and the warlike peasantry thronged from all
quarters to his standard. Tidings now arrived that several of the principal
places on the eastern skirts of the Alpujarras had proclaimed their adherence
to the Morisco cause; and it was expected that the flame of insurrection would
soon spread to the adjoining provinces of Murcia and Valencia. So widely, indeed,
had it already spread, that, of all the Morisco territory south of Granada, the
country around Malaga and the sierra of Ronda, on the
extreme west, were the only portions that still acknowledged the authority of
Castile.
The war now took the same romantic aspect that it wore in the days of the
conquest of Granada. Beacon-fires were to be seen along the highest peaks of
the sierra, throwing their ominous glare around for
many a league, and calling the bold mountaineers to the foray. Then came the
gathering of the wild militia of the country, which, pouring down on the lower
levels, now in the faded green of autumn, swept away herds and flocks, and bore
them off in triumph to their fastnesses.
Sometimes marauders penetrated into the vega,
the beautiful vega, every inch of whose
soil was fertilized with human blood, and which now, as in ancient times,
became the battle-ground of Christian and Moslem cavaliers. Almost always it
was the former who had the advantage, as was intimated by the gory
trophies,—the heads and hands of the vanquished, which they bore on the points
of their lances, when, amidst the shouts of the populace, they came thundering
on through the gates of the capital.
Yet sometimes fortune lay in the opposite scale. The bold infidels, after
scouring the vega, would burst into the
suburbs, or even into the city of Granada, filling the place with
consternation. Then might be seen the terror-stricken citizens hurrying to and fro, while the great alarm-bell of the Alhambra sent forth
its summons, and the chivalry, mounting in haste, shouted the old war-cry
of Saint Jago, and threw themselves on the invaders, who, after a
short but bloody fray, were sure to be driven in confusion across the vega, and far over the borders.
Don John, on these occasions, was always to be descried in the front of
battle, as if rejoicing in his element, and courting danger like some paladin
of romance. Indeed, Philip was obliged, again and again, to rebuke his brother
for thus wantonly exposing his life, in a manner, the king intimated, wholly
unbecoming his rank. But it would have been as easy to rein in the war-horse
when the trumpet was sounding in his ears, as to curb the spirits of the
high-mettled young chieftain when his followers were mustering to the charge.
In truth, it was precisely these occasions that filled him with the greatest
glee; for they opened to him the only glimpses he was allowed of that career of
glory for which his soul had so long panted. Every detachment that sallied forth
from Granada on a warlike adventure was an object of his envy; and as he gazed
on the blue mountains that rose as an impassable barrier around him, he was
like the bird vainly beating its plumage against the gilded wires of its
prison-house, and longing to be free.
He wrote to the king in the most earnest terms, representing the forlorn
condition of affairs,—the Spaniards losing ground day after day, and the army
under the marquis of Los Velez wasting away its energies in sloth, or exerting
them in unprofitable enterprises. He implored his brother not to compel him to
remain thus cooped up within the walls of Granada, but to allow him to have a
real as well as nominal command, and to conduct the war in person.
The views presented by Don John were warmly supported by Requesens, who
wrote to Philip, denouncing, in unqualified terms, the incapacity of Los Velez.
Philip had no objection to receive complaints, even against those whom he
most favored. He could not shut his eyes to the truth of the charges now
brought against the hot-headed old chief, who had so long enjoyed his
confidence, but whose campaigns of late had been a series of blunders. He saw
the critical aspect of affairs, and the danger that the rebellion, which had
struck so deep root in Granada, unless speedily crushed, would spread over the
adjoining provinces. Mondejar's removal from the scene of action had not
brought the remedy that Philip had expected.
Yet it was with reluctance that he yielded to his brother’s wishes; whether
distrusting the capacity of one so young for an independent command, or, as
might be inferred from his letters, apprehending the dangers in which Don
John’s impetuous spirit would probably involve him. Having formed his plans, he
lost no time in communicating them to his brother. The young warrior was to
succeed Los Velez in the command of the eastern army, which was to be
strengthened by reinforcements, while the duke of Sesa, under the direction of
Don John, was to establish himself, with an efficient corps, in the Alpujarras,
in such a position as to cover the approaches to Granada.
A summons was then sent to the principal towns of Andalusia, requiring them
to raise fresh levies for the war, who were to be encouraged by promises of
better pay than had before been given. But these promises did not weigh so much
with the soldiers as the knowledge that Don John of Austria was to take charge
of the expedition; and nobles and cavaliers came thronging to the war, with
their well-armed retainers, in such numbers that the king felt it necessary to
publish another ordinance, prohibiting any, without express permission, from
joining the service.
All now was bustle and excitement in Granada, as the new levies came in,
and the old ones were receiving a better organization. Indeed, Don John had
been closely occupied for some time with introducing reforms among the troops
quartered in the city, who, from causes already mentioned, had fallen into a
state of the most alarming insubordination. A similar spirit had infected the
officers, and to such an extent, that it was deemed necessary to suspend no
less than thirty-seven out of forty-five captains from their commands. Such
were the difficulties under which the youthful hero was to enter on his first
campaign.
Fortunately, in the retainers of the great lords and cavaliers, he had a
body of well-appointed and well-disciplined troops, who were actuated by higher
motives than the mere love of plunder. His labors, moreover, did much to
restore the ancient discipline of the regiments quartered in Granada. But the
zeal with which he had devoted himself to the work of reform had impaired his
health. This drew forth a kind remonstrance from Philip, who wrote to his brother
not thus to overtask his strength, but to remember that he had need of his
services; telling him to remind Quixada that he must watch over him more
carefully. “And God grant”, he concluded, “that your health may be soon
re-established”. The affectionate solicitude constantly shown for his brother's
welfare in the king’s letters, was hardly to have been expected in one of so
phlegmatic a temperament, and who was usually so little demonstrative in the
expression of his feelings.
Before entering on his great expedition, Don John resolved to secure the
safety of Granada, in his absence, by the reduction of “the robber’s nest”, as
the Spaniards called it, of Guejar. This was a
fortified place, near the confines of the Alpujarras, held by a warlike
garrison, that frequently sallied out over the neighboring country, sometimes
carrying their forays into the vega of
Granada, and causing a panic in the capital. Don John formed his force into two
divisions, one of which he gave to the duke of Sesa, while the other he
proposed to lead in person. They were to proceed by different routes, and,
meeting before the place, to attack it simultaneously from opposite quarters.
The duke, marching by the most direct road across the mountains, reached Guejar first, and was not a little surprised to find that
the inhabitants, who had received notice of the preparations of the Spaniards,
were already evacuating the town; while the garrison was formed in order of
battle to cover their retreat. After a short skirmish with the rear-guard, in
which some lives were lost on both sides, the victorious Spaniards, without
following up their advantage, marched into the town, and took possession of the
works abandoned by the enemy.
Great was the surprise of Don John, on arriving some hours later before Guejar, to see the Castilian flag floating from its
ramparts; and his indignation was roused as he found that the laurels he had
designed for his own brow had been thus unceremoniously snatched from him by
another. "With eyes," says the chronicler, "glowing like coals
of fire," he turned on the duke of Sesa, and demanded an explanation of
the affair. But he soon found that the blame, if blame there were, was to be
laid on one whom he felt that he had not the power to rebuke. This was Luis
Quixada, who, in his solicitude for the safety of his ward, had caused the army
to be conducted by a circuitous route, that brought it thus late upon the
field. But though Don John uttered no word of rebuke, he maintained a moody
silence, that plainly showed his vexation; and, as the soldiers remarked, not a
morsel of food passed his lips until he had reached Granada.
The constant supervision maintained over him by Quixada, which, as we have
seen, was encouraged by the king, was a subject of frequent remark among the
troops. It must have afforded no little embarrassment and mortification to Don
John, alike ill-suited, as it was, to his age, his aspiring temper, and his
station. For his station as commander-in-chief of the army made him
responsible, in the eyes of the world, for the measures of the campaign. Yet,
in his dependent situation, he had the power neither to decide on the plan of
operations, nor to carry it into execution. Not many days were to elapse before
the death of his kind-hearted monitor was to relieve him from the jealous
oversight that so much chafed his spirit, and to open to him an independent
career of glory, such as might satisfy the utmost cravings of his ambition.
One of the authorities of the greatest importance, and most frequently
cited in this book, as the reader may have noticed, is Diego Hurtado de
Mendoza. He belonged to one of the most illustrious houses in Castile—a house
not more prominent for its rank than for the great abilities displayed by its
members in the various walks of civil and military life, as well as for their
rare intellectual culture. No one of the great families of Spain has furnished
so fruitful a theme for the pen of both the chronicler and the bard.
He was the fifth son of the marquis of Mondejar, and was born in the year
1503, at Granada, where his father filled the office held by his ancestors, of
captain-general of the province. At an early age he was sent to Salamanca, and
passed with credit through the course of studies taught in its venerable
university. While there he wrote—for, though printed anonymously, there seems
no good reason to distrust the authorship—his famous Lazarillo de Tormes, the origin of that class of picaresco novels, as they are styled, which
constitutes an important branch of Castilian literature, and the best specimen
of which, strange to say, was furnished by the hand of a foreigner,—the Gil
Blas of Le Sage.
Mendoza had been destined to the Church, for which the extensive patronage
of his family offered obvious advantages. But the taste of the young man, as
might be inferred from his novel, took another direction, and he persuaded his
father to allow him to enter the army, and take service under the banner of
Charles the Fifth. Mendoza's love of letters did not desert him in the camp;
and he availed himself of such intervals as occurred between the campaigns to
continue his studies, especially in the ancient languages, in the principal
universities of Italy.
It was impossible that a person of such remarkable endowments as Mendoza,
the more conspicuous from his social position, should escape the penetrating
eye of Charles the Fifth, who, independently of his scholarship, recognized in
the young noble a decided talent for political affairs. In 1538 the emperor
appointed him ambassador to Venice, a capital for which the literary
enterprises of the Aldi were every day winning a higher reputation in the
republic of letters. Here Mendoza had the best opportunity of accomplishing a
work which he had much at heart,—the formation of a library. It was a work of
no small difficulty in that day, when books and manuscripts were to be gathered
from obscure, often remote sources, and at the large cost paid for objects of virtù. A good office which he had the means of
rendering the sultan, by the redemption from captivity of a Turkish prisoner of
rank, was requited by a magnificent present of Greek manuscripts, worth more
than gold in the eyes of Mendoza. It was from his collection that the first
edition of Josephus was given to the world. While freely indulging his taste
for literary occupations in his intervals of leisure, he performed the duties
of his mission with an ability that fully vindicated his appointment as
minister to the wily republic. On the opening of the Council of Trent, he was
one of the delegates sent to represent the emperor in that body. He joined
freely in the discussions of the conclave, and enforced the views of his
sovereign with a strength of reasoning and a fervid eloquence that produced a
powerful impression on his audience. The independence he displayed recommended
him for the delicate task of presenting the remonstrances of Charles the Fifth
to the papal court against the removal of the council to Bologna. This he did
with a degree of frankness to which the pontifical ear was but little
accustomed, and which, if it failed to bend the proud spirit of Paul the Third,
had its effect on his successor.
Mendoza, from whatever cause, does not seem to have stood so high in the favor
of Philip the Second as in that of his father. Perhaps he had too lofty a
nature to stoop to that implicit deference which Philip exacted from the
highest as well as the humblest who approached him. At length, in 1568,
Mendoza’s own misconduct brought him, with good reason, into disgrace with his
master. He engaged in a brawl with another courtier in the palace; and the
scandalous scene, of which the reader will find an account in the preceding
volume, took place when the prince of Asturias, Don Carlos, was breathing his
last. The offending parties were punished first by imprisonment, and then by
banishment from Madrid. Mendoza, who was sixty-five years of age at this time,
withdrew to Granada, his native place. But he had passed too much of his life
in the atmosphere of a court to be content with a provincial residence. He
accordingly made repeated efforts to soften his sovereign’s displeasure, and to
obtain some mitigation of his sentence. These efforts, as may be believed, were
unavailing; and the illustrious exile took at length the wiser course of
submitting to his fate and seeking consolation in the companionship of his
books,—steady friends, whose worth he now fully proved in the hour of
adversity. He devoted himself to the study of Arabic, to which he was naturally
led by his residence in a capital filled with the monuments of Arabic art. He
also amused his leisure by writing verses, and his labors combined with those
of Boscan and Garcilasso de la Vega to naturalize in
Castile those more refined forms of Italian versification that made an
important epoch in the national literature.
But the great work to which he devoted himself was the history of the
insurrection of the Moriscoes, which, occurring during his residence in
Granada, may be said to have passed before his eyes. For this he had, moreover,
obvious facilities, for he was the near kinsman of the captain-general, and was
personally acquainted with those who had the direction of affairs. The result
of his labors was a work of inestimable value, though of no great bulk—being
less a history of events than a commentary on such a history. The author
explores the causes of these events. He introduces the reader into the cabinet
of Madrid, makes him acquainted with the intrigues of the different factions,
both in the court and in the camp, unfolds the policy of the government and the
plans of the campaigns—in short, enables him to penetrate into the interior,
and see the secret working of the machinery, so carefully shrouded from the
vulgar eye.
The value which the work derived from the author's access to these
recondite sources of information is much enhanced by its independent spirit. In
a country where few dared even think for themselves, Mendoza both thought with
freedom and freely expressed his thoughts. Proof of this is afforded by the
caustic tone of his criticism on the conduct of the government, and by the candor
which he sometimes ventures to display when noticing the wrongs of the
Moriscoes. This independence of the historian, we may well believe, could have
found little favor with the administration. It may have been the cause that the
book was not published till after the reign of Philip the Second, and many
years after its author's death.
The literary execution of the work is not its least remarkable feature.
Instead of the desultory and gossiping style of the Castilian chronicler, every
page is instinct with the spirit of the ancient classics. Indeed, Mendoza is
commonly thought to have deliberately formed his style on that of Sallust; but
I agree with my friend Mr. Ticknor, who, in a luminous criticism on Mendoza, in
his great work on Spanish Literature, expresses the opinion that the Castilian
historian formed his style quite as much on that of Tacitus as of Sallust.
Indeed, some of Mendoza's most celebrated passages are obvious imitations of
the former historian, of whom he constantly reminds us by the singular
compactness and energy of his diction, by his power of delineating a portrait
by a single stroke of the pencil, and by his free criticism on the chief actors
of the drama, conveyed in language full of that practical wisdom which, in
Mendoza’s case, was the result of a large acquaintance with public affairs. We
recognize also the defects incident to the style he has chosen—rigidity and
constraint, with a frequent use of ellipsis, in a way that does violence to the
national idiom, and, worst of all, that obscurity which arises from the effort
to be brief. Mendoza hurts his book, moreover, by an unseasonable display of
learning, which, however it may be pardoned by the antiquary, comes like an
impertinent episode to break the thread of the narrative. But, with all its
defects, the work is a remarkable production for the time, and, appearing in
the midst of the romantic literature of Spain, we regard it
with the same feeling of surprise which the traveler might experience who
should meet with a classic Doric temple in the midst of the fantastic
structures of China or Hindostan.
Not long after Mendoza had completed his history, he obtained permission to
visit Madrid, not to reside there, but to attend to some personal affairs. He
had hardly reached the capital when he was attacked by a mortal illness, which
carried him off in April, 1575, in the seventy-third year of his age. Shortly
before his death he gave his rich collection of books and manuscripts to his
obdurate master, who placed them, agreeably to the donor's desire, in the
Escorial, where they still form an interesting portion of a library of which so
much has been said, and so little is really known by the world.
The most copious notice with which I am acquainted, of the life of Mendoza,
is that attributed to the pen of Iñigo Lopez de Avila, and prefixed to the
Valencian edition of the Guerra de Granada, published in 1776. But
his countrymen have been ever ready to do honour to
the memory of one who, by the brilliant success which he achieved as a
statesman, a diplomatist, a novelist, a poet, and an historian, has established
a reputation for versatility of genius second to none in the literature of
Spain.
CHAPTER XLIV. 1570.
Don John lost no time in completing the arrangements for
his expedition. The troops, as they reached Granada, were for the most part
sent forward to join the army under Los Velez, on the east of the Alpujarras,
where that commander was occupied with the siege of Galera, though with but
little prospect of reducing the place. He was soon, however, to be superseded
by Don John.
Philip, unable to close his ears against the
representations of his brother, as well as those of more experienced captains
in the service, had at length reluctantly come to a conviction of the unfitness
of Los Velez for the command. Yet he had a partiality for the veteran; and he
was willing to spare him, as far as possible, the mortification of seeing
himself supplanted by his young rival. In his letters, the king repeatedly
enjoined it on his brother to treat the marquis with the utmost deference, and
to countenance no reports circulated to his prejudice. In an epistle filled
with instructions for the campaign, dated the twenty-sixth of November, the
king told Don John to be directed on all occasions by the counsels of Quixada
and Requesens. He was to show the greatest respect for the marquis, and to give
him to understand that he should be governed by his opinions. “But, in point of
fact”, said Philip, “should his opinion clash at any time with that of the two
other counsellors, you are to be governed by theirs”.
On Quixada and Requesens he was indeed always to rely,
never setting up his own judgment in opposition to theirs. He was to move with
caution, and, instead of the impatient spirit of a boy, to show the
circumspection of one possessed of military experience. “In this way”,
concluded his royal monitor, “you will not only secure the favor of your
sovereign, but establish your reputation with the world”. It is evident that
Philip had discerned traits in the character of Don John which led him to
distrust somewhat his capacity for the high station in which he was placed.
Perhaps it may be thought that the hesitating and timid policy of Philip was
less favorable to success in military operations than the bold spirit of
enterprise which belonged to his brother. However this may be, Don John,
notwithstanding his repeated protestations to the contrary, was of too ardent a
temperament to be readily affected by these admonitions of his prudent adviser.
The military command in Granada was lodged by the
prince in the hands of the duke of Sesa, who, as soon as he had gathered a
sufficient force, was to march into the western district of the Alpujarras, and
there create a diversion in favor of Don John. A body of four thousand troops
was to remain in Granada; and the commander-in-chief, having thus completed his
dispositions for the protection of the capital, set forth on his expedition on
the twenty-ninth of December, at the head of a force amounting only to three
thousand foot and four hundred horse. With these troops went a numerous body of
volunteers, the flower of the Andalusian chivalry, who had come to win renown
under the banner of the young leader.
He took the route through Guadix,
and on the third day reached the ancient city of Baza, memorable for the siege
it had sustained under his victorious ancestors, Ferdinand and Isabella. Here
he was met by Requesens, who, besides a reinforcement of troops, brought with
him a train of heavy ordnance and a large supply of ammunition. The guns were
sent forward, under a strong escort, to Galera; but, on leaving Baza, Don John
received the astounding tidings that the marquis of Los Velez had already
abandoned the siege, and drawn off his whole force to the neighboring town of Guescar.
In fact, the rumor had no sooner reached the ears of
the testy old chief, that Don John was speedily coming to take charge of the
war, than he swore in his wrath that if the report were true, he would abandon
the siege and throw up his command. Yet those who knew him best did not think
him capable of so mad an act. He kept his word, however; and when he learned
that Don John was on the way, he broke up his encampment and withdrew, as above
stated, to Guescar. By this course he left the
adjacent country open to the incursions of the Moriscoes of Galera; while no
care was taken to provide even for the safety of the convoys which, from time
to time, came laden with supplies for the besieging army.
This extraordinary conduct gave no dissatisfaction to
his troops, who, long since disgusted with the fiery yet imbecile character of
their general, looked with pleasure to the prospect of joining the standard of
so popular a chieftain as John of Austria. Even the indignation felt by the
latter at the senseless proceeding of the marquis was forgotten in the
satisfaction he experienced, at being thus relieved from the embarrassments
which his rival’s overweening pretensions could not have failed to cause him in
the campaign. Don John might now, with a good grace, and without any cost to
himself, make all the concessions to the veteran so strenuously demanded by
Philip. It was in this amiable mood that the prince pushed forward his march,
eager to prevent the disastrous consequences which might arise from the
marquis's abandonment of his post.
As he drew near to Guescar,
he beheld the old nobleman riding towards him at the head of his retainers,
with a stiff and stately port, like one who had no concessions or explanations
to make for himself. Without alighting from his horse, as he drew near the
prince, he tendered him obeisance by kissing the hand which the latter
graciously extended towards him. “Noble marquis”, said Don John, “your great
deeds have shed a luster over your name. I consider myself fortunate in having
the opportunity of becoming personally acquainted with you. Fear not that your
authority will be in the least abridged by mine. The soldiers under my command
will obey you as implicitly as myself. I pray you to look on me as a son,
filled with feelings of reverence for your valor and your experience, and
designing on all occasions to lean on your counsels for support”.
The courteous and respectful tone of the prince seems to have had its effect on the iron nature of the marquis, as he replied, “There is no Spaniard living who has a stronger desire than I have to be personally acquainted with the distinguished brother of my sovereign, or who would probably be a greater gainer by serving under his banner. But to speak with my usual plainness, I wish to withdraw to my own house; for it would never do for me, old as I am, to hold the post of a subaltern”. He then accompanied Don John back to the town, giving him, as they rode along, some account of the siege and of the strength of the place. On reaching the quarters reserved for the commander-in-chief, Los Velez took leave of the prince; and, without further ceremony, gathering his knights and followers about him, and escorted by a company of horse, he rode off in the direction of his town of Velez Blanco, which was situated at no great distance, amidst the wild scenery stretching toward the frontiers of Murcia. Here among the mountains he lived in a retirement that would have been more honorable had it not been purchased by so flagrant a breach of duty. The whole story is singularly characteristic, not merely of the man, but of the times in which he lived. Had so high-handed and audacious a proceeding occurred in our day, no rank, however exalted, could have screened the offender from punishment. As it was, it does not appear that any attempt was made at an inquiry into the marquis's conduct. This is the more remarkable, considering that it involved such disrespect to a sovereign little disposed to treat with lenity any want of deference to himself. The explanation of the lenity shown by him on the present occasion may perhaps be found, not in any tenderness for the reputation of his favorite, but in Philip's perceiving that the further prosecution of the affair would only serve to give greater publicity to his own egregious error in retaining Los Velez in the command, when his conduct and the warnings of others should long ago have been regarded as proof of his incapacity. On the marquis's departure, Don John lost no time in resuming his march at the head of a force which now amounted to twelve thousand foot and eight hundred horse, besides a brilliant array of chivalry, who, as we have seen, had come to seek their fortunes in the war. A few hours brought the troops before Galera; and Don John proceeded at once to reconnoiter the ground. In this survey he was attended by Quixada, Requesens, and the greater part of the cavalry. Having completed his observations, he made his arrangements for investing the place. The town of Galera occupied a site singularly picturesque. This, however, had been selected, certainly not from any regard to its romantic beauty, still less for purposes of convenience, but for those of defense against an enemy,—a circumstance of the first importance in a mountain country so wild and warlike as that in which Galera stood. The singular shape of the rocky eminence which it covered was supposed, with its convex summit, to bear some resemblance to that of a galley with its keel uppermost. From this resemblance the town had derived its name. The summit was crowned by a castle, which in the style of its architecture bore evident marks of antiquity. It was defended by a wall, much of it in so ruinous a condition as to be little better than a mass of stones loosely put together. At a few paces from the fortress stood a ravelin. But neither this outwork nor the castle itself could boast of any other piece of artillery than two falconets, captured from Los Velez during his recent siege of the place, and now mounted on the principal edifice. Even these had been so injudiciously placed as to give little annoyance to an enemy. The houses of the inhabitants stretched along the remainder of the summit, and descended by a bold declivity the north-western side of the hill to a broad plain known as the Eras, or “Gardens”. Through this plain flowed a stream of considerable depth, which, as it washed the base of the town on its northern side, formed a sort of moat for its protection on that quarter. On the side towards the Gardens, the town was defended by a ditch and a wall now somewhat dilapidated. The most remarkable feature of this quarter was a church with its belfry or tower, now converted into a fortress, which, in default of cannon, had been pierced with loopholes and filled with musketeers,—forming altogether an outwork of considerable strength, and commanding the approaches to the town. On two of its sides, the rock on which Galera rested descended almost perpendicularly, forming the walls of a ravine fenced in on the opposite quarter by precipitous hills, and thus presenting a sort of natural ditch on a gigantic scale for the protection of the place. The houses rose one above another, on a succession of terraces, so steep that in many instances the roof of one building scarcely reached the foundation of the one above it. The houses which occupied the same terrace, and stood therefore on the same level, might be regarded as so many fortresses. Their walls, which, after the Moorish fashion, were ill-provided with lattices, were pierced with loopholes, that gave the marksmen within the command of the streets on which they fronted; and these streets were still further protected by barricades thrown across them at only fifty paces' distance from each other. Thus the whole place bristled over with fortifications, or rather seemed like one great fortification itself, which nature had combined with art to make impregnable. It was well victualled for a siege, at least with grain, of which there was enough in the magazines for two years' consumption. Water was supplied by the neighboring river, to which access had been obtained by a subterranean gallery, lately excavated in the rock. These necessaries of life the Moriscoes could command. But they were miserably deficient in what, in their condition, was scarcely less important,—fire-arms and ammunition. They had no artillery except the two falconets before noticed; and they were so poorly provided with muskets as to be mainly dependent on arrows, stones, and other missiles, such as had filled the armories of their ancestors. To these might be added swords, and some other weapons for hand-to-hand combat. Of defensive armor they were almost wholly destitute. But they were animated by an heroic spirit, of more worth than breastplate or helmet, and to a man they were prepared to die rather than surrender. The fighting men of the place amounted to three thousand, not including four hundred mercenaries, chiefly Turks and adventurers from the Barbary shore. The town was, moreover, encumbered with some four thousand women and children; though, as far as the women were concerned, they should not be termed an incumbrance in a place where there was no scarcity of food; for they showed all the constancy and contempt of danger possessed by the men, whom they aided not only by tending the sick and wounded, but by the efficient services they rendered them in action. The story of this siege records several examples of these Morisco heroines, whose ferocious valor emulated the doughtiest achievements of the other sex. It is not strange that a place so strong in itself, where the women were animated by as brave a spirit as the men, should have bid defiance to all the efforts of an enemy like Los Velez, though backed by an army in the outset at least as formidable in point of numbers as that which now sat down before it under the command of John of Austria. Having concluded his survey of the ground, the Spanish general gave orders for the construction of three batteries, to operate at the same time on different quarters of the town. The first and largest of these batteries, mounting ten pieces of ordnance, was raised on an eminence on the eastern side of the ravine. Though at a greater distance than was desirable, the position was sufficiently elevated to enable the guns to command the castle and the highest parts of the town. The second battery, consisting of six heavy cannon, was established lower down the ravine, towards the south, at the distance of hardly more than seventy paces from the perpendicular face of the rock. The remaining battery, composed of only three guns of smaller caliber, was erected in the Gardens, and so placed as to operate against the tower which, as already noticed, was attached to the church. The whole number of pieces of artillery belonging to the besiegers did not exceed twenty. But they were hourly expecting a reinforcement of thirteen more from Cartagena. The great body of the forces was disposed behind some high ground on the east, which effectually sheltered the men from the fire of the besieged. The corps of Italian veterans, the flower of the army, was stationed in the Gardens, under command of a gallant officer named Pedro de Padilla. Thus the investment of Galera was complete. The first object of attack was the tower in the Gardens, from which the Moorish garrison kept up a teasing fire on the Spaniards, as they were employed in the construction of the battery, as well as in digging a trench, in that quarter. No sooner were the guns in position than they delivered their fire, with such effect that an opening was speedily made in the flimsy masonry of the fortress. Padilla, to whom the assault was committed, led forward his men gallantly to the breach, where he was met by the defenders with a spirit equal to his own. A fierce combat ensued. It was not a long one; for the foremost assailants were soon reinforced by others, until they overpowered the little garrison by numbers, and such as escaped the sword took refuge in the defenses of the town that adjoined the church. Flushed with his success in thus easily carrying the tower, which he garrisoned with a strong body of arquebusiers, Don John now determined to make a regular assault on the town, and from this same quarter of the Gardens, as affording the best point of attack. The execution of the affair he entrusted, as before, to Juan de Padilla and his Italian regiment. The guns were then turned against the rampart and the adjoining buildings. Don John pushed forward the siege with vigor, stimulating the men by his own example, carrying fagots on his shoulders for constructing the trenches, and, in short, performing the labors of a common soldier. By the twenty-fourth of January, practicable breaches had been effected in the ancient wall; and at the appointed signal, Padilla and his veterans moved swiftly forward to the attack. They met with little difficulty from the ditch or from the wall, which, never formidable from its height, now presented more than one opening to the assailants. They experienced as little resistance from the garrison. But they had not penetrated far into the town before the aspect of things changed. Their progress was checked by one of those barricades already mentioned as stretched across the streets, behind which a body of musketeers poured well-directed volleys into the ranks of the Christians. At the same time, from the loopholes in the walls of the buildings, came incessant showers of musket-balls, arrows, stones, and other missiles, which swept the exposed files of the Spaniards, soon covering the streets with the bodies of the slain and the wounded. It was in vain that the assailants stormed the houses, and carried one entrenchment after another. Each house was a separate fortress; and each succeeding barricade, as the ascent became steeper, gave additional advantage to its defenders, by placing them on a greater elevation above their enemy. Thus beset in front, flank, and rear, the soldiers were completely blinded and bewildered by the pitiless storm which poured on them from their invisible foe. Huddled together, in their confusion they presented an easy mark to the enemy, who shot at random, knowing that every missile would carry its errand of death. It seemed that the besieged had purposely drawn their foes into the snare, by allowing them to enter the town without resistance, until, hemmed in on all sides, they were slaughtered like cattle in the shambles The fight had lasted an hour, when Padilla, seeing his best and bravest falling around him, and being himself nearly disabled by a wound, gave the order to retreat; an order obeyed with such alacrity, that the Spaniards left numbers of their wounded comrades lying in the street, vainly imploring not to be abandoned to the mercy of their enemies. A greater number than usual of officers and men of rank perished in the assault, their rich arms making them a conspicuous mark amidst the throng of assailants. Among others was a soldier of distinction named Juan de Pacheco. He was a knight of the order of St. James. He had joined the army only a few minutes before the attack, having just crossed the seas from Africa. He at once requested Padilla, who was his kinsman, to allow him to share in the glory of the day. In the heat of the struggle, Padilla lost sight of his gallant relative, whose insignia, proclaiming him a soldier of the Cross, made him a peculiar object of detestation to the Moslems; and he soon fell, under a multitude of wounds. The disasters of the day, however mortifying, were not a bad lesson to the young commander-in-chief, who saw the necessity of more careful preparation before renewing his attempt on the place. He acknowledged the value of his brother's counsel, to make free use of artillery and mines before coming to close quarters with the enemy. He determined to open a mine in the perpendicular side of the rock, towards the east, and to run it below the castle and the neighboring houses on the summit. For this he employed the services of Francesco de Molina, who had so stoutly defended Orgiba, and who was aided in the present work by a skillful Venetian engineer. The rock, consisting of a light and brittle sandstone, was worked with even less difficulty than had been expected. In a short time the gallery was completed, and forty-five barrels of powder were lodged in it. Meanwhile the batteries continued to play with great vivacity on the different quarters of the town and castle. A small breach was opened in the latter, and many buildings on the summit of the rock were overthrown. By the twenty-seventh of January all was ready for the assault. It was Don John’s purpose to assail the place on opposite quarters. Padilla, who still smarted from his wound, was to attack the town, as before, on the side towards the Gardens. The chief object of this maneuver was to create a diversion in favor of the principal assault, which was to be made on the other side of the rock, where the springing of the mine, it was expected, would open a ready access to the castle. The command on this quarter was given to a brave officer named Antonio Moreno. Don John, at the head of four thousand men, occupied a position which enabled him to overlook the scene of action. On the twenty-seventh, at eight in the morning, the signal was given by the firing of a cannon; and Padilla, at the head of his veterans, moved forward to the attack. They effected their entrance into the town with even less opposition than before; for the cannonade from the Gardens had blown away most of the houses, garrisoned by the Moslems, near the wall. But as the assailants pushed on, they soon became entangled, as before, in the long and narrow defiles. The enemy, entrenched behind their redoubts thrown across the streets, poured down their murderous volleys into the close ranks of the Spaniards, who were overwhelmed, as on the former occasion, with deadly missiles of all kinds from the occupants of the houses. But experience had prepared them for this; and they had come provided with mantelets, to shelter them from the tempest. Yet, when the annoyance became intolerable, they would storm the dwellings; and a bloody struggle usually ended in putting their inmates to the sword. Each barricade, too, as the Spaniards advanced, became the scene of a desperate combat, where the musket was cast aside, and men fought hand to hand with sword and dagger. Now rose the fierce battle-cries of the combatants, one party calling on St. Jago, the other on Mahomet, thus intimating that it was still the same war of the Cross and the Crescent which had been carried on for more than eight centuries in the Peninsula. The shouts of the combatants, the clash of weapons, the report of musketry from the adjoining houses, the sounds of falling missiles, filled the air with an unearthly din, that was reverberated and prolonged in countless echoes through the narrow streets, converting the once peaceful city into a Pandemonium. Still the Spaniards, though slowly winning their way through every obstacle, were far from the table-land on the summit, where they hoped to join their countrymen from the other quarter of the town. At this crisis a sound arose which overpowered every other sound in this wild uproar, and for a few moments suspended the conflict. This was the bursting of the mine, which Don John, seeing Padilla well advanced in his assault, had now given the order to fire. In an instant came the terrible explosion, shaking Galera to its center, rending the portion of the rock above the gallery into fragments, toppling down the houses on its summit, and burying more than six hundred Moriscoes in the ruins. As the smoke and dust of the falling buildings cleared away, and the Spaniards from below beheld the miserable survivors crawling forth, as well as their mangled limbs would allow, they set up a fierce yell of triumph. The mine, however, had done but half the mischief intended; for by a miscalculation in the direction, it had passed somewhat to the right of the castle, which, as well as the ravelin, remained uninjured. Yet a small breach had been opened by the artillery in the former; and what was more important, through the shattered sides of the rock itself a passage had been made, which, though strewn with the fallen rubbish, might afford a practicable entrance to the storming party. The soldiers, seeing the chasm, now loudly called to be led to the assault. Besides the thirst for vengeance on the rebels who had so long set them at defiance, they were stimulated by the desire of plunder; for Galera, from its great strength, had been selected as a place of deposit for the jewels, rich stuffs, and other articles of value belonging to the people in the neighborhood. The officers, before making the attack, were anxious to examine the breach and have the rubbish cleared away, so as to make the ascent easier for the troops. But the fierce and ill-disciplined levies were too impatient for this. Without heeding the commands or remonstrances of their leaders, one after another they broke their ranks, and, crying the old national war-cries, “San Jago!” “Cierra Espana!” “St. James!” and “Close up Spain!” they rushed madly forward, and, springing lightly over the ruins in their pathway, soon planted themselves on the summit. The officers, thus deserted, were not long in following, resolved to avail themselves of the enthusiasm of the men. Fortunately the Moriscoes, astounded by the explosion, had taken refuge in the town, and thus left undefended a position which might have given great annoyance to the Spaniards. Yet the cry no sooner rose, that the enemy had scaled the heights, than, recovering from their panic, they hurried back to man the defenses. When the assailants, therefore, had been brought into order and formed into column for the attack, they were received with a well-directed fire from the falconets, and with volleys of musketry from the ravelin, that for a moment checked their advance. But then rallying, they gallantly pushed forward through the fiery sleet, and soon found themselves in face of the breach which had been made in the castle by their artillery. The opening, scarcely wide enough to allow two to pass abreast, was defended by men as strong and stout-hearted as their assailants. A desperate struggle ensued, in which the besieged bravely held their ground, though a Castilian ensign, named Zapata, succeeded in forcing his way into the place, and even in planting his standard on the battlements. But it was speedily torn down by the enemy, while the brave cavalier, pierced with wounds, was thrown headlong on the rocky ground below, still clutching the standard with his dying grasp. Meanwhile the defenders of the ravelin kept up a plunging fire of musketry on the assailants; while stones, arrows, javelins, fell thick as rain-drops on their heads, rattling on the harness of the cavaliers, and inflicting many a wound on the ill-protected bodies of the soldiery. The Morisco women bore a brave part in the fight, showing the same indifference to danger as their husbands and brothers, and rolling down heavy weights on the ranks of the besiegers. These women had a sort of military organization, being formed into companies. Sometimes they even joined in hand-to-hand combats with their enemies, wielding their swords and displaying a prowess worthy of the stronger sex. One of these Amazons, whose name became famous in the siege, was seen on this occasion to kill her antagonist, and bear away his armor as the spoils of victory. It was said that, before she received her mortal wound, several Spaniards fell by her hand Thus, while the besieged, secure within their defenses, suffered comparatively little, the attacking column was thrown into disorder. Most of its leaders were killed or wounded. Its ranks were thinned by the incessant fire from the ravelin and castle; and, though it still maintained a brave spirit, its strength was fast ebbing away. Don John, who from his commanding position had watched the field, saw the necessity of sending to the support of his troops six companies of the reserve, which were soon followed by two others. Thus reinforced, they were enabled to keep their ground. Meanwhile the Italian regiment under Padilla had penetrated far into the town. But they had won their way inch by inch, and it had cost them dear. There was not an officer, it was said, that had not been wounded. Four captains had fallen. Padilla, who had not recovered from his former wound, had now received another, still more severe. His men, though showing a bold front, had been so roughly handled, that it was clear they could never fight through the obstacles in their way, and join their comrades on the heights. While little mindful of his own wounds, Padilla saw with anguish the blood of his brave followers thus poured out in vain; and, however reluctantly, he gave the order to retreat. This command was the signal for a fresh storm of missiles from the enemy. But the veterans of Naples, closing up their ranks as a comrade fell, effected their retreat in the same cool and orderly manner in which they had advanced, and, though woefully crippled, regained their position in the trenches. Thus disengaged from the conflict on this quarter, the victorious Moslems hastened to the support of their countrymen in the castle, where they served to counterbalance the reinforcement received by the assailants. They fell at once on the rear of the Christians, whose front ranks were galled by the guns from the enemy’s battery—though clumsily served—while their flanks were sorely scathed by the storm of musketry that swept down from the ravelin. Thus hemmed in on all sides, they were indeed in a perilous situation. Several of the captains were killed. All the officers were either killed or wounded; and the narrow ground on which they struggled for mastery was heaped with the bodies of the slain. Yet their spirits were not broken; and the tide of battle, after three hours' duration, still continued to rage with impotent fury around the fortress. They still strove, with desperate energy, to scale the walls of the ravelin, and to force a way through the narrow breach in the castle. But the besieged succeeded in closing up the opening with heavy masses of stone and timber, which defied the failing strength of the assailants. Another hour had now elapsed, and Don John, as from his station he watched the current of the fight, saw that to prolong the contest would only be to bring wider ruin on his followers. He accordingly gave the order to retreat. But the men who had so impetuously rushed to the attack, in defiance of the commands of their officers, now showed the same spirit of insubordination when commanded to leave it; like the mastiff who, maddened by the wounds he has received in the conflict, refuses to loosen his hold on his antagonist, in spite of the chiding of his master. Seeing his orders thus unheeded, Don John, accompanied by his staff, resolved to go in person to the scene of action, and enforce obedience by his presence. But on reaching the spot, he was hit on his cuirass by a musket-ball, which, although it glanced from the well-tempered metal, came with sufficient force to bring him to the ground. The watchful Quixada, not far distant, sprang to his aid; but it appeared he had received no injury. His conduct, however, brought down an affectionate remonstrance from his guardian, who, reminding him of the king's injunctions besought him to retire, and not thus expose a life so precious as that of the commander-in-chief to the hazards of a common soldier. The account of the accident soon spread, with the usual exaggerations, among the troops, who, after the prince's departure, yielded a slow and sullen obedience to his commands. Thus for a second time the field of battle remained in possession of the Moslems; and the banner of the crescent still waved triumphantly from the battlements of Galera. The loss was a heavy one to the Spaniards, amounting, according to their own accounts—which will not be suspected of exaggeration—to not less than four hundred killed and five hundred wounded. That of the enemy, screened by his defenses, must have been comparatively light. The loss fell most severely on the Spanish chivalry, whose showy dress naturally drew the attention of the well-trained Morisco marksmen. The bloody roll is inscribed with the names of many a noble house in both Andalusia and Castile. This second reverse of his arms stung Don John to the quick. The eyes of his countrymen were upon him; and he well knew the sanguine anticipations they had formed of his campaign, and that they would hold him responsible for its success. His heart was filled with mourning for the loss of his brave companions in arms. Yet he did not give vent to unmanly lamentation; but he showed his feelings in another form, which did little honor to his heart. Turning to his officers, he exclaimed: “The infidels shall pay dear for the Christian blood they have spilt this day. The next assault will place Galera in our power; and every soul within its walls—man, woman, and child—shall be put to the sword. Not one shall be spared. The houses shall be razed to the ground, and the ground they covered shall be sown with salt”. This inhuman speech was received with general acclamations. As the event proved, it was not an empty menace. The result of his operations showed Don John the prudence of his brother's recommendation,—to make good use of his batteries and his mines before coming to close quarters with the enemy. Philip, in a letter written some time after this defeat, alluding to the low state of discipline in the camp, urged his brother to give greater attention to the morals of the soldiers,—to guard especially against profanity and other offences to religion, that by so doing he might secure the favor of the Almighty. Don John had intimated to Philip, that, under some circumstances, it might be necessary to encourage his men by leading them in person to the attack. But the king rebuked the spirit of the knight-errant, as not suited to the commander, and admonished his brother that the place for him was in the rear; that there he might be of service in stimulating the ardor of the remiss; adding, that those who went forward promptly in the fight, had no need of his presence to encourage them. Don John lost no time in making his preparations for a third and last assault. He caused two new mines to be opened in the rock on either side of the former one, and at some thirty paces' distance from it. While this was going on, he directed that all the artillery should play without intermission on the town and castle. His battering-train, meantime, was reinforced by the arrival of fourteen additional pieces of heavy ordnance from Cartagena. The besieged were no less busy in preparing for their defense. The women and children toiled equally with the men in repairing the damages in the works. The breaches were closed with heavy stones and timber. The old barricades were strengthened, and new ones thrown across the streets. The magazines were filled with fresh supplies of stones and arrows. Long practice had made the former missile a more formidable weapon than usual in the hands of the Moriscoes. They were amply provided with water, and, as we have seen, were well victualled for a siege longer than this was likely to prove. But, in one respect, and that of the last importance, they were miserably deficient. Their powder was nearly all expended. They endeavored to obtain supplies of ammunition, as well as reinforcements of men, from Aben-Aboo. But the Morisco prince was fully occupied at this time with maintaining his ground against the duke of Sesa, in the west. His general, El Habaqui, who had charge of the eastern army, encouraged the people of Galera to remain firm, assuring them that before long he should be able to come to their assistance. But time was precious to the besieged. The Turkish auxiliaries in the garrison greatly doubted the possibility of maintaining themselves, with no better ammunition than stones and arrows, against the well-served artillery of the Spaniards. Their leaders accordingly, in a council of war, proposed that the troops should sally forth and cut their way through the lines of the besiegers, while the women and children might pass out by the subterranean avenue which conducted to the river, the existence of which, we are told, was unknown to the Christians. The Turks, mere soldiers of fortune, had no local attachment or patriotic feeling to bind them to the soil. But when their proposal was laid before the inhabitants, they all, women as well as men, treated the proposition with disdain, showing their determination to defend the city to the last, and to perish amidst its ruins rather than surrender. Still sustained by the hope of succor, the besieged did what they could to keep off the day of the assault. They did not, indeed, attempt to counter-mine; for, if they had possessed the skill for this, they had neither tools nor powder. But they had made sorties on the miners, and, though always repulsed with loss, they contrived to hold the camp of the besiegers in a constant state of alarm. On the sixth of February, the engineers who had charge of the mines gave notice that their work was completed. The following morning was named for the assault. The orders of the day prescribed that a general cannonade should open on the town at six in the morning. It was to continue an hour, when the mines were to be sprung. The artillery would then play for another hour, after which the signal for the attack would be given. The signal was to be the firing of one gun from each of the batteries, to be followed by a simultaneous discharge of all. The orders directed the troops to show no quarter to man, woman, or child. On the seventh of February, the last day of the Carnival, the besiegers were under arms with the earliest dawn. Their young commander attracted every eye by the splendor of his person and appointments. He was armed cap-à-pié, and wore a suit of burnished steel, richly inlaid with gold. His casque, overshadowed by brilliant plumes, was ornamented with a medallion displaying the image of the Virgin. In his hand he carried the baton of command; and as he rode along the lines addressing a few words of encouragement to the soldiers, his perfect horsemanship, his princely bearing, and the courtesy of his manners reminded the veterans of the happier days of his father, the emperor. The cavaliers by whom he was surrounded emulated their chief in the richness of their appointments; and the Murcian chronicler, present on that day, dwells with complacency on the beautiful array of southern chivalry gathered together for the final assault upon Galera. From six o'clock till seven, a furious cannonade was kept up from the whole circle of batteries on the devoted town. Then came the order to fire the mines. The deafening roar of ordnance was at once hushed into a silence profound as that of death, while every soldier in the trenches waited, with nervous suspense, for the explosion. At length it came, overturning houses, shaking down a fragment of the castle, rending wider the breach in the perpendicular side of the rock, and throwing off the fragments with the force of a volcano. Only one mine, however, exploded. It was soon followed by the other, which, though it did less damage, spread such consternation among the garrison, that, fearing there might still be a third in reserve, the men abandoned their works, and took refuge in the town. When the smoke and dust had cleared away, an officer with a few soldiers was sent to reconnoiter the breach. They soon returned with the tidings that the garrison had fled, and left the works wholly unprotected. On hearing this, the troops, with furious shouts, called out to be led at once to the assault. It was in vain that the officers remonstrated, enforcing their remonstrances, in some instances, by blows with the flat of their sabers. The blood of the soldiery was up; and, like an ill-disciplined rabble, they sprang from their trenches in wild disorder, as before, and, hurrying their officers along with them, soon scaled the perilous ascent, and crowned the heights without opposition from the enemy. Hurrying over the débris that strewed the ground, they speedily made themselves masters of the deserted fortress and its outworks,—filling the air with shouts of victory. The fugitives saw their mistake, as they beheld the
enemy occupying the position they had abandoned. There was no more apprehension
of mines. Eager to retrieve their error, they rushed back, as by a common
impulse, to dispute the possession of the ground with the Spaniards. It was too
late. The guns were turned on them from their own battery. The arquebusiers who
lined the ravelin showered down on their heads missiles more formidable than
stones and arrows. But, though their powder was nearly gone, the Moriscoes
could still make fight with sword and dagger, and they boldly closed, in a
hand-to-hand contest with their enemy. It was a deadly struggle, calling out—as
close personal contest is sure to do—the fiercest passions of the combatants.
No quarter was given; none was asked. The Spaniard was nerved by the confidence
of victory, the Morisco by the energy of despair. Both fought like men who knew
that on the issue of this conflict depended the fate of Galera. Again the
war-cries of the two religions rose above the din of battle, as the one party
invoked their military apostle, and the other called on Mahomet. It was the
same war-cry which for more than eight centuries had sounded over hill and
valley in unhappy Spain. These were its dying notes, soon to expire with the
exile or extermination of the conquered race.
The conflict was at length terminated by the arrival
of a fresh body of troops on the field with Padilla. That chief had attacked
the town by the same avenue as before; everywhere he had met with the same
spirit of resistance. But the means of successful resistance were gone. Many of
the houses on the streets had been laid in rains by the fire of the artillery.
Such as still held out were defended by men armed with no better weapons than
stones and arrows. One after another, most of them were stormed and fired by
the Spaniards; and those within were put to the sword, or perished in the
flames.
It fared no better with the defenders of the
barricades. Galled by the volleys of the Christians, against whom their own
rude missiles did comparatively little execution, they were driven from one
position to another; as each redoubt was successively carried, a shout of
triumph went up from the victors, which fell cheerily on the ears of their
countrymen on the heights; and when Padilla and his veterans burst on the scene
of action, it decided the fortunes of the day.
There was still a detachment of Turks, whose
ammunition had not been exhausted, and who were maintaining a desperate
struggle with a body of Spanish infantry, in which the latter had been driven
back to the very verge of the precipice. But the appearance of their friends
under Padilla gave the Spaniards new heart; and Turk and Morisco, overwhelmed
alike by the superiority of the numbers and of the weapons of their
antagonists, gave way in all directions. Some fled down the long avenues which
led from the summit of the rock. They were hotly pursued by the Spaniards.
Others threw themselves into the houses, and prepared to make a last defense.
The Spaniards scrambled along the terraces, letting themselves down from one
level to another by means of the Moorish ladders used for that purpose. They
hewed openings in the wooden roofs of the buildings, through which they fired
on those within. The helpless Moriscoes, driven out by the pitiless volleys,
sought refuge in the street. But the fierce hunters were there, waiting for
their miserable game, which they shot down without mercy,—men, women, and
children; none were spared. Yet they did not fall unavenged; and the corpse of
many a Spaniard might be seen stretched on the bloody pavement, lying side by
side with that of his Moslem enemy.
More than one instance is recorded of the desperate
courage to which the women as well as the men were roused in their extremity. A
Morisco girl, whose father had perished in the first assault in the Gardens,
after firing her dwelling, is said to have dragged her two little brothers
along with one hand, and, wielding a scimitar with the other, to have rushed
against the foe, by whom they were all speedily cut to pieces. Another instance
is told, of a man who, after killing his wife and his two daughters, sallied
forth, and calling out, “There is nothing more to lose; let us die together!”,
threw himself madly into the thick of the enemy. Some fell by their own
weapons, others by those of their friends, preferring to receive death from any
hands but those of the Spaniards.
Some two thousand Moriscoes were huddled together in a
square not far from the gate, where a strong body of Castilian infantry cut off
the means of escape. Spent with toil and loss of blood, without ammunition,
without arms, or with such only as were too much battered or broken for
service, the wretched fugitives would gladly have made some terms with their
pursuers, who now closed darkly around them. But the stag at bay might as
easily have made terms with his hunters and the fierce hounds that were already
on his haunches. Their prayers were answered by volley after volley, until not
a man was left alive.
More than four hundred women and children were
gathered together without the walls, and the soldiers, mindful of the value of
such a booty, were willing to spare their lives. This was remarked by Don John,
and no sooner did he observe the symptoms of lenity in the troops, than the
flinty-hearted chief rebuked their remissness, and sternly reminded them of the
orders of the day. He even sent the halberdiers of his guard and the cavaliers
about his person to assist the soldiers in their bloody work; while he sat a
calm spectator, on his horse, as immovable as a marble statue, and as
insensible to the agonizing screams of his victims and their heart-breaking
prayers for mercy.
While this was going on without the town, the work of
death was no less active within. Every square and enclosure that had afforded a
temporary refuge to the fugitives was heaped with the bodies of the slain.
Blood ran down the kennels like water after a heavy shower. The dwellings were
fired, some by the conquerors, others by the inmates, who threw themselves
madly into the flames rather than fall into the hands of their enemies. The
gathering shadows of evening—for the fight had lasted nearly nine hours—were
dispelled by the light of the conflagration, which threw an ominous glare for
many a league over the country, proclaiming far and wide the downfall of
Galera.
At length Don John was so far moved from his original
purpose as to consent that the women, and the children under twelve years of
age, should be spared. This he did, not from any feeling of compunction, but
from deference to the murmurs of his followers, whose discontent at seeing
their customary booty snatched from them began to show itself in a way not to
be disregarded. Some fifteen hundred women and children, in consequence of
this, are said to have escaped the general doom of their countrymen. All the rest, soldiers and citizens, Turks,
Africans, and Moriscoes, were mercilessly butchered. Not one man, if we may
trust the Spaniards themselves, escaped alive! It would not be easy, even in
that age of blood, to find a parallel to so wholesale and indiscriminate a
massacre.
Yet, to borrow the words of the Castilian proverb, “If
Africa had cause to weep, Spain had little reason to rejoice”. No success
during the war was purchased at so high a price as the capture of Galera. The
loss fell as heavily on the officers and men of rank as on the common file. We
have seen the eagerness with which they had flocked to the standard of John of
Austria. They showed the same eagerness to distinguish themselves under the eye
of their leader. The Spanish chivalry were sure to be found in the post of
danger. Dearly did they pay for that pre-eminence; and many a noble house in
Spain wept bitter tears when the tidings came of the conquest of Galera.
Don John himself was so much exasperated, says the
chronicler, by the thought of the grievous loss which he had sustained through
the obstinate resistance of the heretics, that he resolved to carry at once
into effect his menace of demolishing the town, so that not one stone should be
left on another. Every house was accordingly burnt or levelled to the ground,
which was then strewed with salt, as an accursed spot, on which no man was to
build thereafter. A royal decree to that effect was soon afterwards published;
and the village of straggling houses, which, undefended by a wall, still
clusters round the base of a hill, in the Gardens occupied by Padilla, is all
that now serves to remind the traveler of the once flourishing and strongly
fortified city of Galera.
In the work of demolition Don John was somewhat
retarded by a furious tempest of sleet and rain, which set in the day after the
place was taken. It was no uncommon thing at that season of the year. Had it
come on a few days earlier, the mountain torrents would infallibly have broken
up the camp of the besiegers, and compelled them to suspend operations. That
the storm was so long delayed, was regarded by the Spaniards as a special
interposition of Heaven.
The booty was great which fell into the hands of the
victors; for Galera, from its great strength, had been selected by the
inhabitants of the neighboring country as a safe place of deposit for their
effects,—especially their more valuable treasures of gold, pearls, jewels, and
precious stuffs. Besides these, there was a great quantity of wheat, barley,
and other grain, stored in the magazines, which afforded a seasonable supply to
the army.
No sooner was Don John master of Galera, than he sent
tidings of his success to his brother. The king was at that time paying his
devotions at the shrine of Our Lady of Guadalupe. The tidings were received
with exultation by the court,—by Philip with the stolid composure with which he
usually received accounts either of the success or the discomfiture of his
arms. He would allow no public rejoicings of any kind. The only way in which he
testified his satisfaction was by offering up thanks to God and the Blessed
Virgin, “to whom”, says the chronicler, “he thought the cause should be
especially commended, as one in which more glory was to be derived from peace
than from a bloody victory”. With such humane and rational sentiments, it is marvelous
that he did not communicate them to his brother, and thus spare the atrocious
massacre of his Morisco vassals at Galera.
But, however revolting this massacre may appear in our
eyes, it seems to have left no stain on the reputation of John of Austria in
the eyes of his contemporaries. In reviewing this campaign, we cannot too often
call to mind that it was regarded not so much as a war with rebellious vassals,
as a war with the enemies of the Faith. It was the last link in that long chain
of hostilities which the Spaniard for so many centuries had been waging for the
recovery of his soil from the infidel. The sympathies of Christendom were not
the less on his side, that now, when the trumpet of the crusader had ceased to
send forth its notes in other lands, they should still be heard among the hills
of Granada. The Moriscoes were everywhere regarded as infidels and apostates;
and there were few Christian nations whose codes would not at that day have
punished infidelity and apostasy with death. It was no harder for them that
they should be exterminated by the sword than by the fagot. So far from the
massacre of the Moriscoes tarnishing the reputation of their conqueror, it
threw a gloomy éclat over his achievement, which may have
rather served to add to its celebrity. His own countrymen, thinking only of the
extraordinary difficulties which he had overcome, with pride beheld him
entering on a splendid career, that would place his name among those of the
great paladins of the nation. In Rome he was hailed as the champion of
Christendom; and it was determined to offer him the baton of generalissimo of
the formidable league which the pope was at this time organizing against the
Ottoman empire.
CHAPTER XLV. 1570-1571.
While Philip
was occupied with the Morisco insurrection, his attention was called to another
quarter, where a storm was gathering that menaced Spain in common with the rest
of Christendom. In 1566, Suleiman the Magnificent closed his long and
prosperous reign. His son and successor, Selim the Second, possessed
few of the qualities of his great father. Bred in the seraglio, he showed the
fruits of his education in his indolent way of life, and in the free indulgence
of the most licentious appetites. With these effeminate tastes, he inherited
the passion for conquest which belonged not only to his father, but to the
whole of his warlike dynasty. Not that, like them, he headed his armies in the
field. These were led by valiant commanders, who had learned the art of war
under Soliman. Selim was, above all, fortunate in possessing for
his grand vizier a minister whose untiring industry and remarkable talents for
business enabled him to bear on his own shoulders the whole burden of
government. It was fortunate for the state, as well as for the sultan, that
Mahomet had the art to win the confidence of his master, and to maintain it
unshaken through the whole of his reign.
The
scheme which most occupied the thoughts of Selim was the conquest of Cyprus.
This island, to which nature had been so prodigal of her gifts, belonged to
Venice. Yet, placed at the extremity of the Mediterranean, it seemed in a
manner to command the approaches to the Dardanelles, while its line of coast
furnished convenient ports, from which swarms of cruisers might sally forth in
time of war, and plunder the Turkish commerce.
Selim,
resolved on the acquisition of Cyprus, was not slow in devising a pretext for
claiming it from Venice as a part of the Ottoman empire. The republic, though
willing to make almost any concession rather than come to a rupture with the
colossal power under whose shadow she lay, was not prepared to surrender
without a struggle the richest gem in her colonial diadem. War was accordingly
declared against her by the Porte, and vast preparations were made for fitting
out an armament against Cyprus. Venice, in her turn, showed her usual alacrity
in providing for the encounter. She strained her resources to the utmost. In a
very short time she equipped a powerful fleet, and took measures to place the
fortifications of Cyprus in a proper state of defense. But Venice no
longer boasted a navy such as in earlier days had enabled her to humble the
pride of Genoa, and to ride the unquestioned mistress of the Mediterranean.
The defenses of her colonies, moreover, during her long repose, had
gradually fallen into decay. In her extremity, she turned to the Christian
powers of Europe, and besought them to make common cause with her against the
enemy of Christendom.
Fortunately
the chair of St. Peter was occupied, at this crisis, by Pius the Fifth, one of
those pontiffs who seem to have been called forth by the exigencies of the
time, to uphold the pillars of Catholicism, as they were yet trembling under
the assaults of Luther. Though he was near seventy years of age, the fire of
youth still glowed in his veins. He possessed all that impetuous eloquence
which, had he lived in the days of Peter the Hermit, would have enabled him,
like that enthusiast, to rouse the nations of Europe to a crusade against the
infidel. But the days of the crusades were past; and a summons from the Vatican
had no longer the power to stir the souls of men like a voice from heaven. The
great potentates of Europe were too intent on their own selfish schemes to be
turned from these by the apprehension of a danger so remote as that which
menaced them from the East. The forlorn condition of Venice had still less
power to move them; and that haughty republic was now made to feel, in the hour
of her distress, how completely her perfidious and unscrupulous policy had
estranged from her the sympathies of her neighbors.
There
was one monarch, however, who did not close his ears against the appeal of
Venice,—and that monarch, one of more importance to her cause than any other,
perhaps all others united. In the spring of 1570, Luigi Torres, clerk of the
apostolic chamber, was sent to Spain by Pius the Fifth, to plead the cause of
the republic. He found the king at Ecija, on the route from Córdova,
where he had been for some time presiding over a meeting of the Cortes. The
legate was graciously received by Philip, to whom he presented a letter from
his holiness, urging the monarch, in the most earnest and eloquent language, to
give succor to Venice, and to unite with her in a league against the
infidel. Philip did not hesitate to promise his assistance in the present
emergency; but he had natural doubts as to the expediency of binding himself by
a league with a power on whose good faith he had little reliance. He postponed
his decision until his arrival at Seville. Accompanied by the legate, on the
first of May, he made his solemn entry into the great commercial capital of the
South. It was his first visit there, and he was received with tumultuous joy by
the loyal inhabitants. Loyalty to their monarchs has ever been a predominant
trait of the Spaniards; and to none of their princes did they ever show it in
larger measure than to Philip the Second. No one of them, certainly, was more
thoroughly Spanish in his own nature, or more deeply attached to Spain.
After
swearing to respect the privileges of the city, the king received the homage of
the authorities. He then rode through the streets under a gorgeous canopy,
upheld by the principal magistrates, and visited the churches and monasteries,
hearing Te Deum, and offering
up his prayers in the cathedral. He was attended by a gay procession of nobles
and cavaliers, while the streets of the populous city were thronged with
multitudes, filled with enthusiasm at the presence of their sovereign. By this
loyal escort Philip was accompanied to the place of his residence, the royal
alcazar of Seville. Here he prolonged his stay for a fortnight, witnessing the
shows and festivals which had been prepared for his entertainment. At his
departure he received a more substantial proof of the attachment of the
citizens, in a donation of six hundred thousand ducats. The object of this
magnificent present was to defray, in part, the expenses of the king's
approaching marriage with his fourth wife, Anne of Austria, the daughter of his
cousin, the emperor Maximilian. The fair young bride had left her father's
court, and was already on her way to Madrid, where her nuptials were to be
celebrated, and where she was to take the place of the lovely Isabella, whose
death, not two years since, had plunged the nation in mourning.
While
at Seville, Philip laid the subject of the league before his ministers. Some of
these, and among the number Espinosa, president of the council of Castile,
entertained great doubts as to the policy of binding Spain by a formal treaty
with the Venetian republic. But, with all his distrust of that power, Philip
took a broader view of the matter than his ministers. Independently of his
willingness to present himself before the world as the great champion of the
Faith, he felt that such an alliance offered the best opportunity for crippling
the maritime power of Turkey, and thus providing for the safety of his own
colonial possessions in the Mediterranean. After much deliberation, he
dismissed the legate with the assurance that, notwithstanding the troubles
which pressed on him both in the Low Countries and in Granada, he would furnish
immediate succors to Venice, and would send commissioners to Rome,
with full powers to unite with those of the pope and the republic in forming a
treaty of alliance against the Ottoman Porte. The papal envoy was charged with
a letter to the same effect, addressed by Philip to his holiness.
The
ensuing summer, the royal admiral, the famous John Andrew Doria, who was
lying with a strong squadron off Sicily, put to sea by the king's orders. He
was soon after reinforced by a few galleys which were furnished by his
holiness, and placed under the command of Mark Antonio Colonna, the
representative of one of the most ancient and illustrious houses in Rome. On
the last of August, 1570, the combined fleet effected its junction with the
Venetians at Candia, and a plan of operations was immediately arranged. It was
not long before the startling intelligence arrived that Nicosia, the capital of
Cyprus, had been taken and sacked by the Turks, with all the circumstances of
cruelty which distinguish wars in which the feeling of national hostility is
embittered by religious hatred. The plan was now to be changed. A dispute arose
among the commanders as to the course to be pursued. No one had authority
enough to enforce compliance with his own opinion. The dispute ended in a
rupture. The expedition was abandoned; and the several commanders returned home
with their squadrons, without having struck a blow for the cause. It was a bad
omen for the success of the league.
Still
the stout-hearted pontiff was not discouraged. On the contrary, he endeavored to
infuse his own heroic spirit into the hearts of his allies, giving them the
most cheering assurances for the future, if they would but be true to
themselves. Philip did not need this encouragement. Once resolved, his was not
a mind lightly to be turned from its purpose. Venice, on the other hand, soon
showed that the Catholic king had good reason for distrusting her fidelity.
Appalled by the loss of Nicosia, with her usual inconstancy, she dispatched a
secret agent to Constantinople, to see if some terms might not yet be made with
the Sultan. The negotiation could not be managed so secretly, however, but that
notice of it reached the ears of Pius the Fifth. He forthwith dispatched an
envoy to the republic to counteract this measure, and to persuade the Venetians
to trust to their Christian allies rather than to the Turks, the enemies of
their country and their religion. The person selected for this mission was
Colonna, who was quite as much distinguished for his address as for his valor.
He performed his task well. He represented so forcibly to the government that
the course he recommended was the one dictated not less by interest than
by honor, that they finally acquiesced, and recalled their agent from
Constantinople. It must be acknowledged that Colonna's arguments were greatly
strengthened by the cold reception given to the Venetian envoy at
Constantinople, where it was soon seen that the conquest of the capital had by
no means tended to make the sultan relax his hold on Cyprus.
Towards
the close of 1570, the deputies from the three powers met in Rome to arrange
the terms of the league. Spain was represented by the
cardinals Granvelle and Pacheco, together with the ambassador, Juan
de Zuñiga, all three at that time being resident in Rome. It will readily
be believed that the interests of Spain would not suffer in the hands of a
commission with so skillful a tactician as Granvelle to direct it.
Yet
though the parties seemed to be embarked in a common cause, there was found
much difficulty in reconciling their different pretensions. The deputies from
Venice, in the usual spirit of her diplomacy, regarded the league as
exclusively designed for her benefit; in other words, for the protection of
Cyprus against the Turks. The Spanish commissioners took a wider view, and
talked of the war as one waged by the Christian against the Infidel; against
the Moors no less than the Turks. In this politic view of the matter, the
Catholic king was entitled to the same protection for his colonies on the coast
of Africa as Venice claimed for Cyprus.
Another
cause of disagreement was the claim of each of the parties to select a
commander-in-chief for the expedition from its own nation. This pre-eminence
was finally conceded to Spain, as the power that was to bear the largest share
of the expenses.
It was
agreed that the treaty should be permanent in its duration, and should be
directed against the Moors of Tunis, Tripoli, and Algiers, as well as against
the Turks; that the contracting parties should furnish two hundred galleys, one
hundred transports and smaller vessels, fifty thousand foot, and four thousand
five hundred horse, with the requisite artillery and munitions; that by April,
at farthest, of every succeeding year, a similar force should be held in
readiness by the allies for expeditions to the Levant; and that any year in
which there was no expedition in common, and either Spain or the republic
should desire to engage in one on her own account against the Infidel, the
other confederates should furnish fifty galleys towards it; that if the enemy
should invade the dominions of any of the three powers, the others should be
bound to come to the aid of their ally; that three-sixths of the expenses of
the war should be borne by the Catholic king, two-sixths by the republic, the
remaining sixth by the Holy See; that the Venetians should lend his holiness
twelve galleys, which he was to man and equip at his own charge, as his
contribution towards the armament; that each power should appoint a
captain-general; that the united voices of the three commanders should regulate
the plan of operations; that the execution of this plan should be entrusted to
the captain-general of the league, and that this high office should be given to
Don John of Austria; that, finally, no one of the parties should make peace, or
enter into a truce with the enemy, without the knowledge and consent of the
others.
Such
were the principal provisions of the famous treaty of the Holy League. The very
first article declares this treaty perpetual in its nature. Yet we should be
slow to believe that the shrewd and politic statesmen who directed the affairs
of Spain and the republic could for a moment believe in the perpetuity of a
contract which imposed such burdensome obligations on the parties. In fact, the
league did not hold together two years. But it held together long enough to
accomplish a great result, and as such occupies an important place in the
history of the times.
Although
a draft of the treaty had been prepared in the latter part of the preceding
year, it was not ratified till 1571. On the twenty-fourth of May, the pope
caused it to be read aloud in full consistory. He then, laying his hand on his
breast, solemnly swore to the observance of it. The ambassadors of Spain and
Venice made oath to the same effect, on behalf of their governments, placing
their hands on a missal with a copy of the Gospels beneath it. On the day
following, after mass had been performed, the treaty was publicly proclaimed in
the church of St. Peter.
The
tidings of the alliance of the three powers caused a great sensation throughout
Christendom. Far from dismaying the sultan, however, it only stimulated him to
greater exertions. Availing himself of the resources of his vast empire, he
soon got together a powerful fleet, partly drawn from his own dominions, and in
part from those of the Moslem powers on the Mediterranean, who acknowledged
allegiance to the Porte. The armada was placed under the command
of Selim’s brother-in-law, the Pacha Piali,
a man of an intrepid spirit, who had given many proofs of a humane and generous
nature; qualities more rare among the Turks, perhaps among all nations, than
mere physical courage.
Early
in the spring of 1571, the Ottoman admiral sailed out of the Golden Horn, and
directed his course towards Candia. Here he remained until joined by a
strong Algerine force under the redoubtable corsair Uluch Ali,—a Calabrian renegade, who had
risen from the humblest condition to the post of dey of
Algiers. Early in the season the combined fleets sailed for the Adriatic;
and Piali, after landing and laying waste the
territory belonging to the republic, detached Uluch with
his squadron to penetrate higher up the gulf. The Algerine, in executing
these orders, advanced so near to Venice as to throw the inhabitants of that
capital into a consternation such as they had not felt since the cannon of the
Genoese, two centuries before, had resounded over their waters. But it was not
the dey’s purpose to engage in so
formidable an enterprise as an assault upon Venice; and soon drawing off, he
joined the commander-in-chief at Corfu, where they waited for tidings of the
Christian fleet.
The
indefatigable Pius, even before the treaty was signed, had dispatched his
nephew, Cardinal Alessandrino, to the different
courts, to rouse the drooping spirits of the allies, and to persuade other
princes of Christendom to join the league. In the middle of May, the legate,
attended by a stately train of ecclesiastics, appeared at Madrid. Philip gave
him a reception that fully testified his devotion to the Holy See. The king's
brother, Don John, and his favorite minister, Ruy Gomez de
Silva, with some of the principal nobles, waited at once on the cardinal who
had taken up his quarters in the suburbs, at the Dominican monastery
of Atocha, tenanted by brethren of his own order. On the following morning
the papal envoy made his entrance, in great state, into the capital. He was
mounted on a mule, gorgeously caparisoned, the gift of the city. John of
Austria rode on his right; and he was escorted by a pompous array of prelates
and grandees, who seemed to vie with one another in the splendor of
their costumes. On the way he was met by the royal cavalcade. As the legate
paid his obeisance to the monarch, he remained with his head uncovered; and
Philip, with a similar act of courtesy, while he addressed a few remarks to the
churchman, held his hat in his hand. He then joined the procession, riding
between the legate on the right and his brother on the left, who was observed,
from time to time, to take part in the conversation,—a circumstance occasioning
some surprise, says an historian, as altogether contrary to the established
etiquette of the punctilious Castilian court.
The
ceremonies were concluded by religious services in the church of Santa Maria,
where the legate, after preaching a discourse, granted all present a full
remission of the pains of purgatory for two hundred years. A gift
of more worth, in a temporal view, was the grant to the king of the cruzada, the excusada,
and other concessions of ecclesiastical revenue, which the Roman see knows so
well how to bestow on the champions of the Faith. These concessions came in
good time to supply the royal coffers, sorely drained by the costly
preparations for the war.
Meanwhile,
the Venetians were pushing forward their own preparations with their wonted
alacrity,—indeed, with more alacrity than thoroughness. They were prompt in
furnishing their quota of vessels, but discreditably remiss in their manner of
equipping them. The fleet was placed under the charge of Sebastian Veniero, a noble who had grown grey in the service of his
country. Zanne, who had had the command of the fleet in the preceding
summer, was superseded on the charge of incapacity, shown especially in his
neglect to bring the enemy to action. His process continued for two years,
without any opportunity being allowed to the accused of appearing in his own
vindication. It was finally brought to a close by his death,—the consequence,
as it is said, of a broken heart. If it were so, it would not be a solitary
instance of such a fate in the annals of the stern republic. Before midsummer
the new admiral sailed with his fleet, or as much of it as was then ready, for
the port of Messina, appointed as the place of rendezvous for the allies. Here
he was soon joined by Colonna, the papal commander, with the little squadron
furnished by his holiness; and the two fleets lay at anchor, side by side, in
the capacious harbor, waiting the arrival of the rest of the
confederates and of John of Austria.
Preparations
for the war were now going actively forward in Spain. Preparations on so large
a scale had not been seen since the war with Paul the Fourth and Henry the
Third, which ushered in Philip's accession. All the great ports in the
Peninsula, as well as in the kingdom of Naples, in Sicily, in the Balearic
Isles, in every part of the empire in short, swarmed with artisans, busily
engaged in fitting out the fleet which was to form Philip's contingent to the
armament. By the terms of the treaty, he was to bear one-half of the charges of
the expedition. In his naval preparations he spared neither cost nor care.
Ninety royal galleys, and more than seventy ships of small dimensions, were got
in readiness in the course of the summer. They were built and equipped in that
thorough manner which vindicated the pre-eminence in naval architecture claimed
by Spain, and formed a strong contrast to the slovenly execution of the
Venetians.
Levies
of troops were at the same time diligently enforced in all parts of the
monarchy. Even a corps of three thousand German mercenaries was subsidized for
the campaign. Troops were drawn from the veteran garrisons in Lombardy and the
kingdom of Naples. As the Morisco insurrection was fortunately quelled, the
forces engaged in it, among whom were the brave Neapolitan battalion and its
commander, Padilla, could now be employed in the war against the Turk.
But it
can hardly be said to have required extraordinary efforts to fill the ranks on
the present occasion; for seldom had a war been so popular with the nation.
Indeed, the Spaniards entered into it with an alacrity which might well have
suggested the idea that their master had engaged in it on his own account,
rather than as an ally. It was, in truth, a war that appealed in a peculiar
manner to the sensibilities of the Castilian, familiar from his cradle with the
sound of the battle-cry against the Infidel. The whole number of infantry
raised by the confederates amounted to twenty-nine thousand. Of this number
Spain alone sent over nineteen thousand well-appointed troops, comprehending
numerous volunteers, many of whom belonged to the noblest houses of the
Peninsula.
On the
sixth of June, Don John, after receiving the last instructions of his brother,
set out from Madrid on his journey to the south. Besides his own private
establishment, making a numerous train, he was escorted by a splendid company
of lords and cavaliers, eager to share with him in the triumphs of the Cross.
Anxious to reach the goal, he pushed forward at a more rapid rate than was
altogether relished by the rest of the cavalcade. Yet, notwithstanding this
speed on the road, there were matters that claimed his attention in the towns
through which he passed that occasioned some delay. His journey had the
appearance of a royal progress. The castles of the great lords were thrown open
with princely hospitality to receive him and his suite. In the chief cities, as
Saragossa and Barcelona, he was entertained by the viceroys with all the pomp
and ceremony that could have been shown to the king himself. He remained some
days in the busy capital of Catalonia, and found there much to engage his
attention in the arsenals and dockyards, now alive with the bustle of
preparation. He then made a brief pilgrimage to the neighboring hermitage
of our Lady of Montserrat, where he paid his devotions, and conversed with the
holy fathers, whom he had always deeply reverenced, and had before visited in
their romantic solitudes.
Embarking
at Barcelona, he set sail with a squadron of more than thirty galleys,—a force
strong enough to guard against the Moslem corsairs in the Mediterranean, and
landed, on the twenty-fifth, at Genoa. The doge and the senate came out to
welcome him, and he was lodged during his stay in the palace of
Andrew Doria. Here he received embassies and congratulatory addresses from
the different princes of Italy. He had already been greeted with an autograph
letter, couched in the most benignant terms, from the sovereign pontiff. To all
these communications Don John was careful to reply. He acquainted his holiness,
in particular, with the whole course of his proceedings. While on the way, he
had received a letter from his brother, giving him a full catalogue of the
appropriate titles by which each one of his correspondents should be addressed.
Nor was this list confined to crowned heads, but comprehended nobles and
cavaliers, of every degree. In no country has the perilous code of
etiquette been more diligently studied than in Spain, and no Spaniard was
better versed in it than Philip.
Pursuing
his route by water, Don John, in the month of August, dropped anchor in the
beautiful bay of Naples. Arrangements had been made in that city for his
reception on a more magnificent scale than any he had witnessed on his
journey. Granvelle, who had lately been raised to the post of viceroy,
came forth, at the head of a long and brilliant procession, to welcome his
royal guest. The houses that lined the streets were hung with richly-tinted
tapestries, and gaily festooned with flowers. The windows and verandahs were
graced with the beauty and fashion of that pleasure-loving capital; and many a
dark eye sparkled as it gazed on the fine form and features of the youthful
hero, who at the age of twenty-four had come to Italy to assume the baton of
command, and lead the crusade against the Moslems. His splendid dress of white
velvet and cloth of gold set off his graceful person to advantage. A crimson
scarf floated loosely over his breast; and his snow-white plumes, drooping from
his cap, mingled with the yellow curls that fell in profusion over his
shoulders. It was a picture which the Italian maiden might love to look on. It
was certainly not the picture of the warrior sheathed in the iron panoply of
war. But the young prince, in his general aspect, might be relieved from the
charge of effeminacy, by his truly chivalrous bearing and the dauntless spirit
which beamed from his clear blue eye. In his own lineaments he seemed to
combine all that was most comely in the lineaments of his race. Fortunately he
had escaped the deformity of the heavy Burgundian lip, which he might
perhaps have excused, as establishing his claims to a descent from the imperial
house of Hapsburg.
Don
John had found no place more busy with preparations for the campaign than
Naples. A fleet was riding at anchor in her bay, ready to sail under the
command of Don Alvaro Bazan, first marquis of Santa Cruz, a nobleman who
had distinguished himself by more than one gallant achievement in the
Mediterranean, and who was rapidly laying the foundations of a fame that was
one day to eclipse that of every other admiral in Castile.
Ten
days Don John remained at Naples, detained by contrary winds. Though impatient
to reach Messina, his time passed lightly amidst the fêtes and
brilliant spectacles which his friendly hosts had provided for his
entertainment. He entered gaily into the revels; for he was well skilled in the
courtly and chivalrous exercises of the day. Few danced better than he, or
rode, or fenced, or played at tennis with more spirit and skill, or carried off
more frequently the prizes of the tourney. Indeed, he showed as much ambition
to excel in the mimic game of war as on the field of battle. With his
accomplishments and personal attractions, we may well believe that Don John had
little reason to complain of coldness in the fair dames of Italy. But he seems
to have been no less a favorite with the men. The young cavaliers, in
particular, regarded him as the very mirror of chivalry, and studiously formed
themselves on him as their model. His hair clustered thickly round his temples,
and he was in the habit of throwing it back, so as to display his fine forehead
to advantage. This suited his physiognomy. It soon became the mode with the
gallants of the court; and even those whose physiognomies it did not suit were
no less careful to arrange their hair in the same manner.
While
at Naples he took part in a ceremony of an interesting and significant
character. It was on the occasion of the presentation of a standard sent by
Pius the Fifth for the Holy War. The ceremony took place in the church of the
Franciscan convent of Santa Chiara. Granvelle officiated on the
occasion. Mass was performed by the cardinal-viceroy in his pontificals. Te Deum was
then chanted, after which Don John, approaching the altar with a slow and
dignified step, gracefully knelt before the prelate, who, first delivering to
him the baton of generalissimo, in the name of his holiness, next placed in his
hands the consecrated standard. It was of azure damask. A crucifix was
embroidered on the upper part of the banner, while below were the arms of the
Church, with those of Spain on the right, and of Venice on the left, united by
a chain, from which were suspended the arms of John of Austria. The prelate
concluded the ceremony by invoking the blessing of Heaven on its champion, and
beseeching that he might be permitted to carry the banner of the Cross
victorious over its enemies. The choir of the convent then burst forth into a
triumphant peal, and the people from every quarter of the vast edifice shouted
"Amen!"
It was
a striking scene, pregnant with matter for meditation to those who gazed on it.
For what could be more striking than the contrast afforded by these two
individuals,—the one in the morning of life, his eye kindling with hope and
generous ambition, as he looked into the future and prepared to tread the path
of glory under auspices as brilliant as ever attended any mortal; the other
drawing near to the evening of his day, looking to the past rather than the
future, with pale and thoughtful brow, as of one who, after many a toilsome day
and sleepless night, had achieved the proud eminence for which his companion
was panting,—and had found it barren!
The
wind having become more favorable, Don John took leave of the gay capital
of the South, and embarked for Messina, which he reached on the twenty-fifth of
August. If in other places he had seen preparations for war, here he seemed to
be brought on the very theatre of war. As he entered the noble port, he was
saluted with the thunders of hundreds of pieces of ordnance from the combined
fleets of Rome and Venice, which lay side by side awaiting his arrival. He
landed beneath a triumphal arch of colossal dimensions, embossed with rich plates
of silver, and curiously sculptured with emblematical bas-reliefs, and with
complimentary legends in Latin verse, furnished by the classical poets of
Italy. He passed under two other arches of similar rich and elaborate
construction, as he rode into the town amidst the ringing of bells, the cheers
of the multitude, the waving of scarfs and handkerchiefs from the balconies,
and other lively demonstrations of the public joy, such as might have
intoxicated the brain of a less ambitious soldier than John of Austria. The
festivities were closed in the evening by a general illumination of the city,
and by a display of fireworks that threw a light far and wide over the
beautiful harbor and the countless ships that floated on its waters.
Nothing
could be finer, indeed, whether by day or by night, than the spectacle
presented by the port of Messina. Every day a fresh reinforcement of squadrons,
or of single galleys or brigantines, under some brave adventurer, entered the harbor
to swell the numbers of the great armada. Many of these vessels, especially the
galleys, were richly carved and gilt, after the fashion of the time, and with
their many-colored streamers, and their flags displaying the arms of their
several states, made a magnificent show as they glanced over the waters. None,
in the splendor of their decorations, exceeded the Real,
as the galley of the commander-in-chief was termed. It was of great size, and
had been built in Barcelona, famous for its naval architecture all the world
over. The stern of the vessel was profusely decorated with emblems and devices
drawn from history. The interior was furnished in a style of luxury that seemed
to be designed for pleasure, rather than for the rough duties of war. But the
galley was remarkable for both strength and speed,—the two most essential qualities
in the construction of a ship. Of this she gave ample evidence in her contest
with the Turk.
The
whole number of vessels in the armada, great and small, amounted to something
more than three hundred. Of these full two-thirds were "royal
galleys." Venice alone contributed one hundred and six, besides six galeazzas. These were ships of enormous bulk, and,
as it would seem, of clumsy construction, carrying each more than forty pieces
of artillery. The Spaniards counted a score of galleys less than their Venetian
confederates. But they far exceeded them in the number of their frigates,
brigantines, and vessels of smaller size. They boasted a still greater
superiority in the equipment of their navy. Indeed, the Venetian squadron was
found so indifferently manned, that Don John ordered several thousand hands to
be drafted from the ships of the other Italian powers, and from the Spanish, to
make up the necessary complement. This proceeding conveyed so direct a censure
on the remissness of his countrymen, as to give great disgust to the
admiral, Veniero. But in the present emergency
he had neither the power to resist nor to resent it.
The
number of persons on board of the fleet, soldiers and seamen, was estimated at
eighty thousand. The galleys, impelled by oars more than by sails, required a
large number of hands to navigate them. The soldiers, as we have seen, did not
exceed twenty-nine thousand; of which number more than nineteen thousand were
furnished by Spain. They were well-appointed troops, most of them familiar with
war, and officered by men, many of whom had already established a high
reputation in the service. On surveying the muster-roll of cavaliers who
embarked in this expedition, one may well believe that Spain had never before
sent forth a fleet in which were to be found the names of so many of her sons
illustrious for rank and military achievement. If the same can be said of
Venice, we must consider that the present war was one in which the prosperity,
perhaps the very existence, of the republic was involved. The Spaniard was
animated by the true spirit of the Crusades, when, instead of mercenary
motives, the guerdon for which men fought was glory in this world and paradise
in the next.
Sebastian Veniero, trembling for the possessions of the republic in
the Adriatic, would have put to sea without further delay, and sought out the
enemy. But Don John, with a prudence hardly to have been expected, declined
moving until he had been strengthened by all his reinforcements. He knew the
resources of the Ottoman empire; he could not doubt that in the present
emergency they would be strained to the utmost to equip a formidable armament;
and he resolved not to expose himself unnecessarily to the chances of defeat,
by neglecting any means in his power to prepare for the encounter. It was a
discreet determination, which must have met the entire approbation of his
brother.
While
he was thus detained at Messina, a papal nuncio, Odescalco,
bishop of Pena, arrived there. He was the bearer of sundry spiritual favors from
the pontiff, whose real object, no doubt, was to quicken the movements of John
of Austria. The nuncio proclaimed a jubilee; and every man in the armada, from
the captain-general downwards, having fasted three days, confessed and partook
of the communion. The prelate, in the name of his holiness, then proclaimed a
full remission of their sins; and he conceded to them the same indulgences as
had been granted to the deliverers of the Holy Sepulcher. To Don John the
pope communicated certain revelations and two cheering prophecies from
St. Isadore, which his holiness declared had undoubted reference to the
prince. It is further stated, that Pius appealed to more worldly feelings, by
intimating to the young commander that success could not fail to open the way
to the acquisition of some independent sovereignty for himself. Whether
this suggestion first awakened so pleasing an idea in Don John's mind, or
whether the wary pontiff was aware that it already existed there, it is certain
that it became the specter which from this time forward continued to
haunt the imagination of the aspiring chieftain, and to beckon him onward in
the path of perilous ambition to its melancholy close.
All
being now in readiness, orders were given to weigh anchor; and on the sixteenth
of September the magnificent armament—unrivalled by any which had rode upon
these waters since the days of imperial Rome—stood out to sea. The papal
nuncio, dressed in his pontificals, took a
prominent station on the mole; and as each vessel passed successively before
him, he bestowed on it his apostolic benediction. Then, without postponing a
moment longer his return, he left Messina and hastened back to Rome to announce
the joyful tidings to his master.
CHAPTER XXLVI. 1571.
As the
allied fleet coasted along the Calabrian shore, it was so much
baffled by rough seas and contrary winds that its progress was slow. Not long
before his departure Don John had sent a small squadron under a Spanish
captain, Gil de Andrada, to collect tidings of the enemy. On his return
that commander met the Christian fleet, and reported that the Turks, with a
powerful armament, were still in the Adriatic, where they had committed fearful
ravages on the Venetian territories. Don John now steered his course for Corfu,
which, however, he did not reach till the twenty-sixth of September. He soon
had ample opportunities of seeing for himself the traces of the enemy, in the
smoking hamlets and desolated fields along the coast. The allies were welcomed
with joy by the islanders, who furnished them with whatever supplies they
needed. Here Don John learned that the Ottoman fleet had been standing into the
Gulf of Lepanto, where it lay as if waiting the coming of the Christians.
The
young commander-in-chief had now no hesitation as to the course he ought to
pursue. But he chose to call a council of his principal captains before
deciding. The treaty of alliance, indeed, required him to consult with the
other commanders before taking any decisive step in matters of importance; and
this had been strenuously urged on him by the king, ever afraid of his
brother's impetuosity.
The opinions
of the council were divided. Some who had had personal experience of the naval
prowess of the Turks appeared to shrink from encountering so formidable an
armament, and would have confined the operations of the fleet to the siege of
some place belonging to the Moslems. Even Doria, whose life had been spent
in fighting with the infidel, thought it was not advisable to attack the enemy
in his present position, surrounded by friendly shores, whence he might easily
obtain succor. It would be better, he urged, to attack some neighboring place,
like Navarino, which might have the effect of drawing him from the gulf,
and thus compel him to give battle in some quarter more advantageous to the
allies.
But the
majority of the council took a very different view of the matter. To them it
appeared that the great object of the expedition was to destroy the Ottoman
fleet, and that a better opportunity could not be offered than the present one,
while the enemy was shut up in the gulf, from which, if defeated, he would find
no means of escape. Fortunately, this was the opinion, not only of the
majority, but of most of those whose opinions were entitled to the greatest
deference. Among these were the gallant marquis of Santa Cruz, the
Grand-Commander Requesens, who still remained near the person of Don John,
and had command of a galley in his rear, Cardona, general of the Sicilian
squadron, Barbarigo, the Venetian provveditore,
next in authority to the captain-general of his nation, the Roman Colonna, and
Alexander Farnese, the young prince of Parma, Don John's nephew, who had come,
on this memorable occasion, to take his first lesson in the art of war,—an art
in which he was destined to remain without a rival.
The
commander-in-chief, with no little satisfaction, saw himself so well supported
in his own judgment; and he resolved, without any unnecessary delay, to give
the Turks battle in the position they had chosen. He was desirous, however, to
be joined by part of his fleet, which, baffled by the winds, and without oars,
still lagged far behind. For the galley, with its numerous oars in addition to
its sails, had somewhat of the properties of a modern steamer, which so
gallantly defies both wind and wave. As Don John wished also to review his
fleet before coming into action, he determined to cross over to Comenizza, a capacious and well-protected port on the
opposite coast of Albania.
This he
did on the thirtieth of September. Here the vessels were got in readiness for
immediate action. They passed in review before the commander-in-chief, and went
through their various evolutions, while the artillerymen and musketeers showed
excellent practice. Don John looked with increased confidence to the
approaching combat. An event, however, occurred at this time, which might have
been attended with the worst consequences.
A Roman
officer, named Tortona, one of those who had been drafted to make up the
complement of the Venetian galleys, engaged in a brawl with some of his crew.
This reached the ears of Veniero, the Venetian
captain-general. The old man, naturally of a choleric temper, and still
smarting from the insult which he fancied he had received by the introduction
of the allies on board of his vessels, instantly ordered the arrest of the
offender. Tortona for a long while resisted the execution of these
orders; and when finally seized, with some of his companions, they were all
sentenced by the vindictive Veniero to be
hung at the yardarm. Such a high-handed proceeding caused the deepest
indignation in Don John, who regarded it, moreover, as an insult to himself. In
the first moments of his wrath he talked of retaliating on the Venetian admiral
by a similar punishment. But, happily, the remonstrances of
Colonna—who, as the papal commander, had in truth the most reason to
complain—and the entreaties of other friends, prevailed on the angry chief to
abstain from any violent act. He insisted, however, that Veniero should never again take his place at the
council-board, but should be there represented by the provveditore Barbarigo,
next in command,—a man, fortunately, possessed of a better control over his
temper than was shown by his superior. Thus the cloud passed away, which
threatened for a moment to break up the harmony of the allies, and to bring
ruin on the enterprise.
On the
third of October, Don John, without waiting longer for the missing vessels,
again put to sea, and stood for the Gulf of Lepanto. As the fleet swept down
the Ionian Sea, it passed many a spot famous in ancient story. None, we may
imagine, would be so likely to excite an interest at this time as Actium, on
whose waters was fought the greatest naval battle of antiquity. But the mariner
probably gave little thought to the past, as he dwelt on the conflict that
awaited him at Lepanto. On the fifth, a thick fog enveloped the armada, and
shut out every object from sight. Fortunately, the vessels met with no injury,
and, passing by Ithaca, the ancient home of Ulysses, they safely anchored off
the eastern coast of Cephalonia. For two days their progress was thwarted by
headwinds. But on the seventh, Don John, impatient of delay, again put to sea,
though wind and weather were still unfavorable.
While
lying off Cephalonia he had received tidings that Famagosta,
the second city of Cyprus, had fallen into the hands of the enemy, and this
under circumstances of unparalleled perfidy and cruelty. The place, after
a defense that had cost hecatombs of lives to the besiegers, was
allowed to capitulate on honorable terms. Mustapha, the Moslem
commander, the same fierce chief who had conducted the siege of Malta,
requested an interview at his quarters with four of the principal Venetian
captains. After a short and angry conference, he ordered them all to execution.
Three were beheaded. The other, a noble named Bragadino,
who had held the supreme command, he caused to be flayed alive in the
market-place of the city. The skin of the wretched victim was then stuffed; and
with this ghastly trophy dangling from the yardarm of his galley, the brutal
monster sailed back to Constantinople, to receive the reward of his services
from Selim. These services were great. The fall of Famagosta secured the fall of Cyprus, which thus
became permanently incorporated in the Ottoman empire.
The
tidings of these shocking events filled the breast of every Venetian with an
inextinguishable thirst for vengeance. The confederates entered heartily into these feelings; and all on board of the armada
were impatient for the hour that was to bring them hand to hand with the
enemies of the Faith.
It was two
hours before dawn, on Sunday, the memorable seventh of October, when the fleet
weighed anchor. The wind had become lighter; but it was still contrary, and the
galleys were indebted for their progress much more to their oars than their
sails. By sunrise they were abreast of the Curzolari,—a
cluster of huge rocks, or rocky islets, which on the north defends the entrance
of the Gulf of Lepanto. The fleet moved laboriously along, while every eye was
strained to catch the first glimpse of the hostile navy. At length the watch on
the fore-top of the Real called out "A sail!" and
soon after declared that the whole Ottoman fleet was in sight. Several others,
climbing up the rigging, confirmed his report; and in a few moments more, word
was sent to the same effect by Andrew Doria, who commanded on the right.
There was no longer any doubt; and Don John, ordering his pennon to be
displayed at the mizen-peak, unfurled the great standard of the League,
given by the pope, and directed a gun to be fired, the signal for battle. The
report, as it ran along the rocky shores, fell cheerily on the ears of the
confederates, who, raising their eyes towards the consecrated banner, filled
the air with their shouts.
The
principal captains now came on board the Real, to receive the last
orders of the commander-in-chief. Even at this late hour, there were some who
ventured to intimate their doubts of the expediency of engaging the enemy in a
position where he had a decided advantage. But Don John cut short the discussion.
"Gentlemen," he said, "this is the time for combat, not for
counsel." He then continued the dispositions he was making for the attack.
He had
already given to each commander of a galley written instructions as to the
manner in which the line of battle was to be formed in case of meeting the
enemy. The armada was now disposed in that order. It extended on a front of
three miles. Far on the right, a squadron of sixty-four galleys was commanded
by the Genoese admiral, Andrew Doria,—a name of terror to the Moslems. The
center, or battle, as it was called, consisting of sixty-three
galleys, was led by John of Austria, who was supported on the one side by
Colonna, the captain-general of the pope, and on the other by the Venetian
captain-general, Veniero. Immediately in the
rear was the galley of the Grand-Commander Requesens, who still remained
near the person of his former pupil; though a difference which arose between
them on the voyage, fortunately now healed, showed that the young commander-in-chief
was wholly independent of his teacher in the art of war.
The
left wing was commanded by the noble Venetian, Barbarigo, whose vessels
stretched along the Aetolian shore, to which he approached as near
as, in his ignorance of the coast, he dared to venture, so as to prevent his
being turned by the enemy. Finally, the reserve, consisting of thirty-five
galleys, was given to the brave marquis of Santa Cruz, with directions to act
in any quarter where he thought his presence most needed. The smaller craft,
some of which had now arrived, seem to have taken little part in the action,
which was thus left to the galleys.
Each
commander was to occupy so much space with his galley as to allow room
for maneuvering it to advantage, and yet not enough to allow the
enemy to break the line. He was directed to single out his adversary, to close
with him at once, and board as soon as possible. The beaks of the galleys were
pronounced to be a hindrance rather than a help in action. They were rarely
strong enough to resist a shock from an antagonist, and they much interfered
with the working and firing of the guns. Don John had the beak of his vessel
cut away. The example was followed throughout the fleet, and, as it is said,
with eminently good effect. It may seem strange that this discovery should have
been reserved for the crisis of a battle.
When
the officers had received their last instructions, they returned to their
respective vessels; and Don John, going on board of a light frigate, passed
rapidly through the part of the armada lying on his right, while he
commanded Requesens to do the same with the vessels on his left. His
object was to feel the temper of his men, and to rouse their mettle by a few
words of encouragement. The Venetians he reminded of their recent injuries. The
hour for vengeance, he told them, had arrived. To the Spaniards and other
confederates he said—"You have come to fight the battle of the Cross; to
conquer or to die. But whether you are to die or conquer, do your duty this
day, and you will secure a glorious immortality." His words were received
with a burst of enthusiasm which went to the heart of the commander, and
assured him that he could rely on his men in the hour of trial. On returning to
his vessel, he saw Veniero on his
quarter-deck; and they exchanged salutations in as friendly a manner as if no
difference had existed between them. At this solemn hour both these brave men
were willing to forget all personal animosity in a common feeling of devotion
to the great cause in which they were engaged.
The
Ottoman fleet came on slowly and with difficulty. For, strange to say, the
wind, which had hitherto been adverse to the Christians, after lulling for a
time, suddenly shifted to the opposite quarter, and blew in the face of the
enemy. As the day advanced, moreover, the sun, which had shone in the eyes
of the confederates, gradually shot its rays into those of the Moslems. Both
circumstances were of good omen to the Christians, and the first was regarded
as nothing short of a direct interposition of Heaven. Thus ploughing its way
along, the Turkish armament, as it came more into view, showed itself in
greater strength than had been anticipated by the allies. It consisted of
nearly two hundred and fifty royal galleys, most of them of the largest class,
besides a number of smaller vessels in the rear, which, like those of the
allies, appear scarcely to have come into action. The men on board of every
description were computed at not less than a hundred and twenty thousand. The
galleys spread out, as usual with the Turks, in the form of a
regular halfmoon, covering a wider extent of surface than the combined
fleets, which they somewhat exceeded in number. They presented, indeed, as they
drew nearer, a magnificent array, with their gilded and gaudily-painted prows,
and their myriads of pennons and streamers, fluttering gaily in the breeze;
while the rays of the morning sun glanced on the polished scimitars of Damascus
and on the superb aigrettes of jewels which sparkled in the turbans of the
Ottoman chiefs.
In the center
of the extended line, and directly opposite to the station occupied by the
captain-general of the League, was the huge galley of Ali Pasha. The right of
the armada was commanded by Mahomet Sirocco, viceroy of Egypt, a circumspect as
well as courageous leader; the left, by Uluch Ali, dey of Algiers, the redoubtable corsair of the
Mediterranean. Ali Pasha had experienced a difficulty like that of Don John, as
several of his officers had strongly urged the inexpediency of engaging so
formidable an armament as that of the allies. But Ali, like his rival, was
young and ambitious. He had been sent by his master to fight the enemy; and
no remonstrances, not even those of Mahomet Sirocco, for whom he had great
respect, could turn him from his purpose.
He had,
moreover, received intelligence that the allied fleet was much inferior in
strength to what it proved. In this error he was fortified by the first
appearance of the Christians; for the extremity of their left wing, commanded
by Barbarigo, stretching behind the Aetolian shore, was hidden
from his view. As he drew nearer, and saw the whole extent of the Christian
lines, it is said his countenance fell. If so, he still did not abate one jot
of his resolution. He spoke to those around him with the same confidence as
before, of the result of the battle. He urged his rowers to strain every nerve.
Ali was a man of more humanity in his nature than often belonged to his nation.
His galley-slaves were all, or nearly all, Christian captives; and he addressed
them in this brief and pithy manner: "If your countrymen are to win this
day, Allah give you the benefit of it; yet if I win it, you shall certainly
have your freedom. If you feel that I do well by you, do then the like by
me."
As the
Turkish admiral drew nearer, he made a change in his order of battle, by
separating his wings further from his center; thus conforming to the
dispositions of the allies. Before he had come within cannon-shot, he fired a
gun by way of challenge to his enemy. It was answered by another from the
galley of John of Austria. A second gun discharged by Ali was as promptly replied
to by the Christian commander. The distance between the two fleets was now
rapidly diminishing. At this solemn moment a deathlike silence reigned
throughout the armament of the confederates. Men seemed to hold their breath,
as if absorbed in the expectation of some great catastrophe. The day was
magnificent. A light breeze, still adverse to the Turks, played on the waters,
somewhat fretted by the contrary winds. It was nearly noon; and as the sun,
mounting through a cloudless sky, rose to the zenith, he seemed to pause, as if
to look down on the beautiful scene, where the multitude of galleys, moving
over the water, showed like a holiday spectacle rather than a preparation for
mortal combat.
The
illusion was soon dispelled by the fierce yells which rose on the air from the
Turkish armada. It was the customary war-cry with which the Moslems entered
into battle. Very different was the scene on board of the Christian galleys.
Don John might be there seen, armed cap-à-pié,
standing on the prow of the Real, anxiously awaiting the conflict.
In this conspicuous position, kneeling down, he raised his eyes to heaven, and humbly
prayed that the Almighty would be with His people on that day. His example was
followed by the whole fleet. Officers and men, all prostrating themselves on
their knees, and turning their eyes to the consecrated banner which floated
from the Real, put up a petition like that of their commander. They
then received absolution from the priests, of whom there were some in every
vessel; and each man, as he rose to his feet, gathered new strength, as he felt
assured that the Lord of Hosts would fight on his side.
When
the foremost vessels of the Turks had come within cannon-shot, they opened
their fire on the Christians. The firing soon ran along the whole of the
Turkish line, and was kept up without interruption as it advanced. Don John
gave orders for trumpet and atabal to sound the signal for action;
which was followed by the simultaneous discharge of such of the guns in the
combined fleet as could be brought to bear on the enemy. The Spanish commander
had caused the galeazzas, those mammoth
war-ships of which some account has been already given, to be towed half a mile
ahead of the fleet, where they might intercept the advance of the Turks. As the
latter came abreast of them, the huge galleys delivered their broadsides right
and left; and their heavy ordnance produced a startling effect. Ali Pasha gave
orders for his galleys to open their line and pass on either side, without
engaging these monsters of the deep, of which he had had no experience. Even
so, their heavy guns did considerable damage to several of the nearest vessels,
and created some confusion in the pacha's line of battle. They were,
however, but unwieldy craft, and, having accomplished their object, seem to
have taken no further part in the combat.
The
action began on the left wing of the allies, which Mahomet Sirocco was desirous
of turning. This had been anticipated by Barbarigo, the Venetian admiral,
who commanded in that quarter. To prevent it, as we have seen, he lay with his
vessels as near the coast as he dared. Sirocco, better acquainted with the
soundings, saw there was space enough for him to pass; and darting by with all
the speed that oars could give him, he succeeded in doubling on his enemy. Thus
placed between two fires, the extreme of the Christian left fought at terrible
disadvantage. No less than eight galleys went to the bottom, and several others
were captured. The brave Barbarigo, throwing himself into the heat of the
fight, without availing himself of his defensive armor, was pierced in the
eye by an arrow, and, reluctant to leave the glory of the field to another, was
borne to his cabin. The combat still continued with unabated fury on the part
of the Venetians. They fought like men who felt that the war was theirs, and
who were animated not only by the thirst for glory, but for revenge.
Far on
the Christian right a maneuver similar to that so successfully
executed by Sirocco was attempted by Uluch Ali,
the dey of Algiers. Profiting by his
superiority in numbers, he endeavored to turn the right wing of the
confederates. It was in this quarter that Andrew Doria commanded. He
had foreseen this movement of his enemy, and he succeeded in foiling it. It was
a trial of skill between the two most accomplished seamen in the
Mediterranean. Doria extended his line so far to the right indeed, to
prevent being surrounded, that Don John was obliged to remind him that he left
the center too much exposed. His dispositions were so far unfortunate for
himself, that his own line was thus weakened, and afforded some vulnerable
points to his assailant. These were soon detected by the eagle eye of Uluch Ali; and, like the king of birds swooping on his
prey, he fell on some galleys separated by a considerable interval from their
companions, and, sinking more than one, carried off the great Capitana of Malta in triumph as his prize.
BATTLE
OF LEPANTO.
While
the combat opened thus disastrously to the allies both on the right and on the
left, in the center they may be said to have fought with doubtful fortune. Don
John had led his division gallantly forward. But the object on which he was
intent was an encounter with Ali Pasha, the foe most worthy of his sword. The
Turkish commander had the same combat no less at heart. The galleys of both
were easily recognized, not only from their position, but from their superior
size and richer decoration. The one, moreover, displayed the holy banner of the
League; the other, the great Ottoman standard. This, like the ancient standard
of the caliphs, was held sacred in its character. It was covered with texts
from the Koran, emblazoned in letters of gold, and had the name of Allah
inscribed upon it no less than twenty-eight thousand nine hundred times. It was
the banner of the sultan, having passed from father to son since the foundation
of the imperial dynasty, and was never seen in the field unless the Grand
Seigneur or his lieutenant was there in person.
Both
the chiefs urged on their rowers to the top of their speed. Their galleys soon
shot ahead of the rest of the line, driven through the boiling surges as by the
force of a tornado, and closed with a shock that made every timber crack, and
the two vessels quiver to their very keels. So powerful, indeed, was the
impetus they received, that the pacha's galley, which was
considerably the larger and loftier of the two, was thrown so far upon its
opponent that the prow reached the fourth bench of rowers. As soon as the
vessels were disengaged from each other, and those on board had recovered from
the shock, the work of death began. Don John's chief strength consisted in some
three hundred Spanish arquebusiers, culled from the flower of his
infantry. Ali, on the other hand, was provided with an equal number of janizaries. He was followed by a smaller vessel, in which
two hundred more were stationed as a corps de reserve. He had,
moreover, a hundred archers on board. The bow was still as much in use with the
Turks as with the other Moslems.
The pacha opened
at once on his enemy a terrible fire of cannon and musketry. It was returned
with equal spirit and much more effect: for the Turks were observed to shoot
over the heads of their adversaries. The Moslem galley was unprovided with
the defenses which protected the sides of the Spanish vessels; and
the troops, crowded together on the lofty prow, presented an easy mark to their
enemy's balls. But though numbers of them fell at every discharge, their places
were soon supplied by those in reserve. They were enabled, therefore, to keep
up an incessant fire, which wasted the strength of the Spaniards; and as both
Christian and Mussulman fought with indomitable spirit, it seemed doubtful to
which side victory would incline.
The
affair was made more complicated by the entrance of other parties into the
conflict. Both Ali and Don John were supported by some of the most valiant
captains in their fleets. Next to the Spanish commander, as we have seen, were
Colonna and the veteran Veniero, who, at the age
of seventy-six, performed feats of arms worthy of a paladin of romance. In this
way a little squadron of combatants gathered round the principal leaders, who
sometimes found themselves assailed by several enemies at the same time. Still
the chiefs did not lose sight of one another; but, beating off their inferior
foes as well as they could, each, refusing to loosen his hold, clung with
mortal grasp to his antagonist.
Thus
the fight raged along the whole extent of the entrance to the Gulf of Lepanto.
The volumes of vapor rolling heavily over the waters effectually shut
out from sight whatever was passing at any considerable distance, unless when a
fresher breeze dispelled the smoke for a moment, or the flashes of the heavy
guns threw a transient gleam on the dark canopy of battle. If the eye of the
spectator could have penetrated the cloud of smoke that enveloped the
combatants, and have embraced the whole scene at a glance, he would have
perceived them broken into small detachments, separately engaged one with another,
independently of the rest, and indeed ignorant of all that was doing in other
quarters. The contest exhibited few of those large combinations and skillful maneuvers to
be expected in a great naval encounter. It was rather an assemblage of petty
actions, resembling those on land. The galleys, grappling together, presented a
level arena, on which soldier and galley-slave fought hand to hand; and the
fate of the engagement was generally decided by boarding. As in most
hand-to-hand contests, there was an enormous waste of life. The decks were
loaded with corpses, Christian and Moslem lying promiscuously together in the
embrace of death. Instances are recorded where every man on board was slain or
wounded. It was a ghastly spectacle, where blood flowed in rivulets down
the sides of the vessels, staining the waters of the gulf for miles around.
It
seemed as if a hurricane had swept over the sea, and covered it with the wreck
of the noble armaments which a moment before were so proudly riding on its
bosom. Little had they now to remind one of their late magnificent array, with
their hulls battered, their masts and spars gone or splintered by the shot,
their canvas cut into shreds and floating wildly on the breeze, while thousands
of wounded and drowning men were clinging to the floating fragments, and
calling piteously for help. Such was the wild uproar which succeeded the
Sabbath-like stillness that, two hours before, had reigned over these beautiful
solitudes.
The
left wing of the confederates, commanded by Barbarigo, had been sorely
pressed by the Turks, as we have seen, at the beginning of the
fight. Barbarigo himself had been mortally wounded. His line had been
turned. Several of his galleys had been sunk. But the Venetians gathered
courage from despair. By incredible efforts, they succeeded in beating off
their enemies. They became the assailants in their turn. Sword in hand, they
carried one vessel after another. The Capuchin was seen in the thickest of the fight,
waving aloft his crucifix, and leading the boarders to the assault. The
Christian galley-slaves, in some instances, broke their fetters, and joined
their countrymen against their masters. Fortunately, the vessel of Mahomet
Sirocco the Moslem admiral, was sunk; and though extricated from the water
himself, it was only to perish by the sword of his conqueror, Giovanni
Contarini. The Venetian could find in his heart no mercy for the Turk.
The
fall of their commander gave the final blow to his followers. Without further
attempt to prolong the fight, they fled before the avenging swords of the
Venetians. Those nearest the land endeavored to escape by running
their vessels ashore, where they abandoned them as prizes to the Christians.
Yet many of the fugitives, before gaining the land, perished miserably in the
waves. Barbarigo, the Venetian admiral, who was still lingering in agony,
heard the tidings of the enemy's defeat, and, uttering a few words expressive
of his gratitude to Heaven, which had permitted him to see this hour, he
breathed his last.
During
this time the combat had been going forward in the center between the two
commanders-in-chief, Don John and Ali Pasha, whose galleys blazed with an
incessant fire of artillery and musketry, that enveloped them like "a
martyr's robe of flames." The parties fought with equal spirit, though not
with equal fortune. Twice the Spaniards had boarded their enemy, and both times
they had been repulsed with loss. Still their superiority in the use of
fire-arms would have given them a decided advantage over their opponents, if
the loss they had inflicted had not been speedily repaired by fresh
reinforcements. More than once the contest between the two chieftains was
interrupted by the arrival of others to take part in the fray. They soon,
however, returned to each other, as if unwilling to waste their strength on a
meaner enemy. Through the whole engagement both commanders exposed themselves
to danger as freely as any common soldier. In such a contest even Philip must
have admitted that it would be difficult for his brother to find, with honor,
a place of safety. Don John received a wound in the foot. It was a slight one,
however, and he would not allow it to be dressed till the action was over.
Again
his men were mustered, and a third time the trumpets sounded to the attack. It
was more successful than the preceding. The Spaniards threw themselves boldly
into the Turkish galley. They were met with the same spirit as before by
the janizaries. Ali Pasha led them on.
Unfortunately, at this moment, he was struck in the head by a musket-ball, and
stretched senseless in the gangway. His men fought worthily of their ancient
renown. But they missed the accustomed voice of their commander. After a short
but ineffectual struggle against the fiery impetuosity of the Spaniards, they
were overpowered, and threw down their arms. The decks were loaded with the
bodies of the dead and the dying. Beneath these was discovered the Turkish
commander-in-chief, severely wounded, but perhaps not mortally. He was drawn
forth by some Castilian soldiers, who, recognizing his person, would at once
have dispatched him. But the disabled chief, having rallied from the
first effects of his wound, had sufficient presence of mind to divert them from
their purpose, by pointing out the place below where he had deposited his money
and jewels; and they hastened to profit by the disclosure, before the treasure
should fall into the hands of their comrades.
Ali was
not so successful with another soldier, who came up soon after, brandishing his
sword, and preparing to plunge it into the body of the prostrate commander. It
was in vain that the latter endeavored to turn the ruffian from his
purpose. He was a convict, one of those galley-slaves whom Don John had caused
to be unchained from the oar and furnished with arms. He could not believe that
any treasure would be worth so much as the head of the pacha. Without
further hesitation, he dealt him a blow which severed it from his shoulders.
Then, returning to his galley, he laid the bloody trophy before Don John. But
he had miscalculated on his recompense. His commander gazed on it with a look
of pity mingled with horror. He may have thought of the generous conduct of Ali
to his Christian captives, and have felt that he deserved a better fate. He
coldly inquired "of what use such a present could be to him;" and
then ordered it to be thrown into the sea. Far from the order being obeyed, it
is said the head was stuck on a pike, and raised aloft on board of the captured
galley. At the same time the banner of the Crescent was pulled down; while that
of the Cross, run up in its place, proclaimed the downfall of the pacha.
The sight
of the sacred ensign was welcomed by the Christians with a shout of
"Victory!" which rose high above the din of battle. The tidings
of the death of Ali soon passed from mouth to mouth, giving fresh heart to the
confederates, but falling like a knell on the ears of the Moslems. Their
confidence was gone. Their fire slackened. Their efforts grew weaker and
weaker. They were too far from shore to seek an asylum there, like their
comrades on the right. They had no resource but to prolong the combat or to surrender.
Most preferred the latter. Many vessels were carried by boarding, others were
sunk by the victorious Christians. Ere four hours had elapsed, the centre, like the right wing, of the Moslems might be said
to be annihilated.
Still
the fight was lingering on the right of the confederates, where, it will be
remembered, Uluch Ali,
the Algerine chief, had profited by Doria's error in
extending his line so far as greatly to weaken it. Uluch Ali,
attacking it on its most vulnerable quarter, had succeeded, as we have seen, in
capturing and destroying several vessels; and would have inflicted still
heavier losses on his enemy had it not been for the seasonable succour received from the marquis of Santa Cruz. This
brave officer, who commanded the reserve, had already been of much service to
Don John when the Real was assailed by several Turkish galleys
at once during his combat with Ali Pasha; for at this juncture the marquis of
Santa Cruz arriving, and beating off the assailants, one of whom he afterwards
captured, enabled the commander-in-chief to resume his engagement with
the pacha.
No
sooner did Santa Cruz learn the critical situation of Doria, than,
supported by Cardona, "general" of the Sicilian squadron, he pushed
forward to his relief. Dashing into the midst of the mêlée, the two
commanders fell like a thunderbolt on the Algerine galleys. Few
attempted to withstand the shock. But in their haste to avoid it, they were
encountered by Doria and his Genoese galleys. Thus beset on all
sides, Uluch Ali was compelled to abandon
his prizes, and provide for his own safety by flight. He cut adrift the
Maltese Capitana, which he had lashed to
his stern, and on which three hundred corpses attested the desperate character
of her defence. As tidings reached him of the
discomfiture of the center, and of the death of Ali Pasha, he felt that nothing
remained but to make the best of his way from the fatal scene of action, and
save as many of his own ships as he could. And there were no ships in the
Turkish fleet superior to his, or manned by men under more perfect discipline.
For they were the famous corsairs of the Mediterranean, who had been rocked
from infancy on its waters.
Throwing
out his signals for retreat, the Algerine was soon to be seen, at the
head of his squadron, standing towards the north, under as much canvas as
remained to him after the battle, and urged forward through the deep by the
whole strength of his oarsmen. Doria and Santa Cruz followed quickly
in his wake. But he was borne on the wings of the wind, and soon distanced his
pursuers. Don John, having disposed of his own assailants, was coming to the
support of Doria, and now joined in the pursuit of the viceroy. A rocky
headland, stretching far into the sea, lay in the path of the fugitive; and his
enemies hoped to intercept him there. Some few of his vessels were stranded on
the rocks. But the rest, near forty in number, standing more boldly out to sea,
safely doubled the promontory. Then, quickening their flight, they gradually
faded from the horizon, their white sails, the last thing visible, showing in
the distance like a flock of Arctic sea-fowl on their way to their native
homes. The confederates explained the inferior sailing of their own galleys on
this occasion by the circumstance of their rowers, who had been allowed to bear
arms in the fight, being crippled by their wounds.
The
battle had lasted more than four hours. The sky, which had been almost without
a cloud through the day, began now to be overcast, and showed signs of a coming
storm. Before seeking a place of shelter for himself and his prizes, Don
John reconnoitred the scene of action. He
met with several vessels too much damaged for further service. These, mostly
belonging to the enemy, after saving what was of any value on board, he ordered
to be burnt. He selected the neighboring port of Petala, as
affording the most secure and accessible harbour for
the night. Before he had arrived there, the tempest began to mutter, and
darkness was on the water. Yet the darkness rendered only more visible the
blazing wrecks, which, sending up streams of fire mingled with showers of
sparks, looked like volcanoes on the deep.
CHAPTER XLVII. 1571—1574.
Long and loud were the congratulations now paid to the
young commander-in-chief by his brave companions-in-arms, on the success of the
day. The hours passed blithely with officers and men, while they recounted to
one another their manifold achievements. But feelings of gloom mingled with
their gaiety, as they gathered tidings of the loss of friends who had bought
this victory with their blood.
It was, indeed, a sanguinary battle, surpassing, in
this particular, any sea-fight of modern times. The loss fell much the most
heavily on the Turks. There is the usual discrepancy about numbers; but it may
be safe to estimate their loss at nearly twenty-five thousand slain and five
thousand prisoners. What brought most pleasure to the hearts of the conquerors
was the liberation of twelve thousand Christian captives, who had teen chained
to the oar on board the Moslem galleys, and who now came forth, with tears of
joy streaming down their haggard cheeks, to bless their deliverers.
The loss of the allies was comparatively small,—less
than eight thousand. That it was so much less than that of their enemies,
may be referred in part to their superiority in the use of fire-arms; in part
also to their exclusive use of these, instead of employing bows and arrows,
weapons on which, though much less effective, the Turks, like the other Moslem
nations, seem to have greatly relied. Lastly, the Turks were the vanquished
party, and in their heavier loss suffered the almost invariable lot of the vanquished.
As to their armada, it may almost be said to have been
annihilated. Not more than forty galleys escaped out of near two hundred and
fifty which entered into the action. One hundred and thirty were taken and
divided among the conquerors. The remainder, sunk or burned, were swallowed up
by the waves. To counterbalance all this, the confederates are said to have
lost not more than fifteen galleys, though a much larger number, doubtless,
were rendered unfit for service. This disparity affords good evidence of the
inferiority of the Turks in the construction of their vessels, as well as in
the nautical skill required to manage them. A great amount of booty, in the
form of gold, jewels, and brocade, was found on board several of the prizes.
The galley of the commander-in-chief alone is stated to have contained one
hundred and seventy thousand gold sequins,—a large sum, but not large enough,
it seems, to buy off his life.
The losses of the combatants cannot be fairly
presented without taking into the account the quality as well as the number of
the slain. The number of persons of consideration, both Christians and Moslems,
who embarked in the expedition, was very great. The roll of slaughter showed
that in the race of glory they gave little heed to their personal safety. The
officer second in command among the Venetians, the commander-in-chief of the
Turkish armament, and the commander of its right wing, all fell in the battle.
Many a high-born cavalier closed at Lepanto a long career of honorable service.
More than one, on the other hand, dated the commencement of their career from
this day. Such was Alexander Farnese, prince of Parma. Though he was but a few
years younger than his uncle, John of Austria, those few years had placed an
immense distance between their conditions, the one filling the post of
commander-in-chief, the other being only a private adventurer. Yet even so, he
succeeded in winning great renown by his achievements. The galley in which he
sailed was lying yardarm and yardarm alongside of a Turkish galley, with which
it was hotly engaged. In the midst of the action Farnese sprang on board of the
enemy, and with his good broadsword hewed down all who opposed him, opening a
path into which his comrades poured one after another, and, after a short but
murderous contest, succeeded in carrying the vessel. As Farnese's galley lay
just astern of Don John's, the latter could witness the achievement of his
nephew, which filled him with an admiration he did not affect to conceal. The
intrepidity displayed by the young warrior on this occasion gave augury of his
character in later life, when he succeeded his uncle in command, and surpassed
him in military renown.
Another youth was in that fight, who, then humble and
unknown, was destined one day to win laurels of a purer and more enviable kind
than those which grow on the battle-field. This was Cervantes, who, at the age
of twenty-four, was serving on board the fleet as a common soldier. He had been
confined to his bed by a fever; but, notwithstanding
the remonstrances of his captain, he insisted, on the morning of the
action, not only on bearing arms, but on being stationed in the post of danger.
And well did he perform his duty there, as was shown by two wounds on the
breast, and by another in the hand, by which he lost the use of it. Fortunately
it was the left hand. The right yet remained to indite those immortal
productions which were to be known as household words, not only in his own
land, but in every quarter of the civilized world.
A fierce storm of thunder and lightning raged for
four-and-twenty hours after the battle, during which time the fleet rode safely
at anchor in the harbour of Petala. It remained
there three days longer. Don John profited by the delay to visit the different
galleys and ascertain their condition. He informed himself of the conduct of
the troops, and was liberal of his praises to those who deserved them. With the
sick and the wounded he showed the greatest sympathy, endeavoring to
alleviate their sufferings, and furnishing them with whatever his galley
contained that could contribute to their comfort. With so generous and
sympathetic a nature, it is not wonderful that he should have established
himself in the hearts of his soldiers.
But the proofs of this kindly temper were not confined
to his own followers. Among the prisoners were two sons of Ali, the Turkish
commander-in-chief. One was seventeen, the other only thirteen years of age.
Thus early had their father desired to initiate them in a profession which,
beyond all others, opened the way to eminence in Turkey. They were not on board
of his galley; and when they were informed of his death, they were
inconsolable. To this affliction was now to be added the doom of slavery.
As they were led into the presence of Don John, the
youths prostrated themselves on the deck of his vessel. But raising them up, he
affectionately embraced them, and said all he could to console them under their
troubles. He caused them to be treated with the consideration due to their
rank. His secretary, Juan de Soto, surrendered his quarters to them. They were
provided with the richest apparel that could be found among the spoil. Their
table was served with the same delicacies as that of the commander-in-chief;
and his chamberlains showed the same deference to them as to himself. His
kindness did not stop with these acts of chivalrous courtesy. He received a
letter from their sister Fatima, containing a touching appeal to Don John's
humanity, and soliciting the release of her orphan brothers. He had sent a
courier to give their friends in Constantinople the assurance of their personal
safety; "which," adds the lady, "is held by all this court as an
act of great courtesy,—gran gentileza;—and
there is no one here who does not admire the goodness and magnanimity of your
highness." She enforced her petition with a rich present, for which she
gracefully apologized, as intended to express her own feelings, though far
below his deserts.
In the division of the spoil, the young princes had
been assigned to the pope. But Don John succeeded in obtaining their
liberation. Unfortunately, the elder died—of a broken heart, it is said—at
Naples. The younger was sent home, with three of his attendants, for whom he
had a particular regard. Don John declined keeping Fatima's present, which he
gave to her brother. In a letter to the Turkish princess, he remarked that he
had done this, not because he undervalued her beautiful gift, but because it had
ever been the habit of his royal ancestors freely to grant their favors to
those who stood in need of them, but not to receive aught by way of recompense.
The same noble nature he showed in his conduct
towards Veniero. We have seen the friendly
demonstration he made to the testy Venetian on entering into battle. He now
desired his presence on board his galley. As he drew near, Don John came
forward frankly to greet him. He spoke of his desire to bury the past in oblivion,
and complimenting the veteran on his prowess in the late engagement, saluted
him with the endearing name of "father." The old soldier, not
prepared for so kind a welcome, burst into tears; and there was no one, says
the chronicler who tells the anecdote, that could witness the scene with a dry
eye.
While at Petala, a council of war was called to
decide on the next operations of the fleet. Some were for following up the blow
by an immediate attack on Constantinople. Others considered that, from the want
of provisions and the damaged state of the vessels, they were in no condition
for such an enterprise. They recommended that the armada should be disbanded,
that the several squadrons of which it was composed should return to their
respective winter quarters, and meet again in the spring to resume operations.
Others, again, among whom was Don John, thought that before disbanding, they
should undertake some enterprise commensurate with their strength. It was
accordingly determined to lay siege to Santa Maura, in the island of Leucadia,
a strongly-fortified place, which commanded the northern entrance into the Gulf
of Lepanto.
The fleet, weighing anchor on the eleventh of October,
arrived off Santa Maura on the following day. On a careful reconnaissance of
the ground, it became evident that the siege would be a work of much greater
difficulty than had been anticipated. A council of war was again summoned; and
it was resolved, as the season was far advanced, to suspend further operations
for the present, to return to winter quarters, and in the ensuing spring to
open the campaign under more favorable auspices.
The next step was to make a division of the spoil
taken from the enemy, which was done in a manner satisfactory to all parties.
One half of the galleys and inferior vessels, of the artillery and small arms,
and also of the captives, was set apart for the Catholic king. The other half
was divided between the pope and the republic, in the proportion settled by the
treaty of confederation. Next proceeding to Corfu, Don John passed three
days at that island, making some necessary repairs of his vessels; then, bidding
adieu to the confederates, he directed his course to Messina, which he reached,
after a stormy passage, on the thirty-first of the month.
We may imagine the joy with which he was welcomed by
the inhabitants of that city, which he had left but little more than six weeks
before, and to which he had now returned in triumph, after winning the most
memorable naval victory of modern times. The whole population, with the
magistrates at their head, hurried down to the shore to witness the magnificent
spectacle. As the gallant armament swept into port, it showed the results of
the late contest in many a scar. But the consecrated standard was still proudly
flying at the masthead of the Real; and in the rear came the long
line of conquered galleys, in much worse plight than their conquerors, trailing
their banners ignominiously behind them in the water. On landing at the head of
his troops, Don John was greeted with flourishes of music, while salvoes of
artillery thundered from the fortresses which commanded the city. He was
received under a gorgeous canopy, and escorted by a numerous concourse of
citizens and soldiers. The clergy, mingling in the procession, broke forth into
the Te Deum; and thus
entering the cathedral, they all joined in thanksgivings to the Almighty, for
granting them so glorious a victory.
Don John was sumptuously lodged in the castle. He was
complimented with a superb banquet,—a mode of expressing the public gratitude not
confined to our day,—and received a more substantial guerdon in a present from
the city of thirty thousand crowns. Finally, a colossal statue in bronze was
executed by a skillful artist, as a permanent memorial of the conqueror of
Lepanto. Don John accepted the money, but it was only to devote it to the
relief of the sick and wounded soldiers. In the same generous spirit, he had
ordered that all his own share of the booty taken in the Turkish vessels,
including the large amount of gold and rich brocades found in the galley of Ali
Pasha, should be distributed among the captors.
The news of the victory of Lepanto caused a profound
sensation throughout Christendom; for it had been a general opinion that the
Turks were invincible by sea. The confederates more particularly testified
their joy by such extraordinary demonstrations as showed the extent of their
previous fears. In Venice, which might be said to have gained a new lease of
existence from the result of the battle, the doge, the senators, and the people
met in the great square of St. Mark, and congratulated one another on the
triumph of their arms. By a public decree, the seventh of October was set
apart, to be observed for ever as a national anniversary.
The joy was scarcely less in Naples, where the people
had so often seen their coasts desolated by the Ottoman cruisers; and when
their admiral, the marquis of Santa Cruz, returned to port with his squadron,
he was welcomed with acclamations such as greet the conqueror returning from
his campaign.
But even these honors were inferior to those
which in Rome were paid to Colonna, the Captain-general of the papal fleet. As
he was borne in stately procession, with the trophies won from the enemy
carried before him, and a throng of mourning captives in the rear, the spectacle
recalled the splendors of the ancient Roman triumph. Pius the Fifth
had, before this, announced that the victory of the Christians had been
revealed to him from Heaven. But when the tidings reached him of the actual
result, it so far transcended his expectations, that, overcome by his emotions,
the old pontiff burst into a flood of tears, exclaiming in the words of the
Evangelist, "There was a man sent from God; and his name was John."
We may readily believe that the joy with which the
glad tidings were welcomed in Spain fell nothing short of that with which they
were received in other parts of Christendom. While lying off Petala, Don
John sent Lope de Figueroa with dispatches for the king, together
with the great Ottoman standard, as the most glorious trophy taken in the
battle. He soon after sent a courier with further letters. It so happened
that neither the one nor the other arrived at the place of their destination
till some weeks after the intelligence had reached Philip by another channel.
This was the Venetian Minister, who on the last of October received dispatches from
his own government, containing a full account of the fight. Hastening with them
to the palace, he found the king in his private chapel, attending vespers on
the eve of All-Saints. The news, it cannot be doubted, filled his soul with
joy; though it is said that, far from exhibiting this in
his demeanor, he continued to be occupied with his devotions, without the
least change of countenance, till the services were concluded. He then
ordered Te Deum to be
sung. All
present joined with overflowing hearts in pouring forth their gratitude to the
Lord of Hosts for granting such a triumph to the Cross.
That night there was a grand illumination in Madrid.
The following day mass was said by the papal legate in presence of the king,
who afterwards took part in a solemn procession to the church of St. Mary,
where the people united with the court in a general thanksgiving.
In a letter from Philip to his brother, dated from the
Escorial, the twenty-ninth of November, he writes to him out of
the fulness of his heart, in the language of gratitude and brotherly
love:—"I cannot express to you the joy it has given me to learn the
particulars of your conduct in the battle, of the great valor you
showed in your own person, and your watchfulness in giving proper directions to
others—all which has doubtless been a principal cause of the victory. So to
you, after God, I am to make my acknowledgments for it, as I now do; and happy
am I that it has been reserved for one so near and so dear to me to perform
this great work, which has gained such glory for you in the eyes of God and of
the whole world."
The feelings of the king were fully shared by his
subjects. The enthusiasm roused throughout the country by the great victory was
without bounds. "There is no man," writes one of the royal
secretaries to Don John, "who does not discern the hand of the Lord in
it;—though it seems rather like a dream than a reality, so far does it
transcend any naval encounter that the world ever heard of before." The
best sculptors and painters were employed to perpetuate the memory of the
glorious event. Amongst the number was Titian, who in the time of Charles the
Fifth had passed two years in Spain, and who now, when more than ninety years
of age, executed the great picture of "The Victory of the League,"
still hanging on the walls of the Muséo at
Madrid. The lofty theme proved a fruitful source of inspiration to the
Castilian muse. Among hecatombs of epics and lyrics, the heroic poem of Ercilla and the sublime cancion of
Fernando de Herrera perpetuate the memory of the victory of Lepanto in forms
more durable than canvas or marble—as imperishable as the language itself.
While all were thus ready to render homage to the
talent and bravery which had won the greatest battle of the time, men, as they
grew cooler, and could criticize events more carefully, were disposed
to ask, where were the fruits of this great victory. Had Don John's father,
Charles the Fifth, gained such a victory, it was said, he would not thus have
quitted the field, but, before the enemy could recover from the blow, would
have followed it up by another. Many expressed the conviction, that the
young generalíssimo should at once have led
his navy against Constantinople.
There would indeed seem to be plausible ground
for criticizing his course after the action. But we must remember, in
explanation of the conduct of Don John, that his situation was altogether
different from that of his imperial father. He possessed no such absolute
authority as the latter did over his army. The great leaders of the
confederates were so nearly equal in rank, that they each claimed a right to be
consulted on all measures of importance. The greatest jealousy existed among
the three commanders, as there did also among the troops whom they commanded.
They were all united, it is true, in their hatred to the Turk. But they were
all influenced, more or less, by the interest of their own states, in
determining the quarter where he was to be assailed. Every rood of territory
wrung from the enemy in the Levant would only serve to enlarge the domain of
Venice; while the conquests in the western parts of the Mediterranean would
strengthen the empire of Castile. This feeling of jealousy between the
Spaniards and the Venetians was, as we have seen, so great in the early part of
the expedition, as nearly to bring ruin on it.
Those who censured Don John for not directing his arms
against Constantinople would seem to have had but a very inadequate notion of
the resources of the Porte—as shown in the course of that very year. There is a
remarkable letter from the duke of Alva, written the month after the battle of
Lepanto, in which he discusses the best course to be taken in order to reap the
full fruits of the victory. In it he expresses the opinion, that an attempt
against Constantinople, or indeed any part of the Turkish dominions, unless
supported by a general coalition of the great powers of Christendom, must end
only in disappointment—so vast were the resources of that great empire. If this
were so,—and no better judge than Alva could be found in military affairs,—how
incompetent were the means at Don John's disposal for effecting this
object—confederates held together, as the event proved, by a rope of sand, and
a fleet so much damaged in the recent combat that many of the vessels were
scarcely seaworthy!
In addition to this, it may be stated, that Don John
knew it was his brother's wish that the Spanish squadron should return to
Sicily to pass the winter. If he persisted, therefore, in the campaign, he
must do so on his own responsibility. He had now accomplished the great object
for which he had put to sea. He had won a victory more complete than the most
sanguine of his countrymen had a right to anticipate. To prolong the contest
under the present circumstances, would he in a manner to provoke his fate, to jeopardy the
glory he had already gained, and incur the risk of closing the campaign with
melancholy cypress, instead of the laurel-wreath of victory. Was it surprising
that even an adventurous spirit like his should have shrunk from hazarding so
vast a stake with the odds against him?
It is a great error to speak of the victory of Lepanto
as a barren victory, which yielded no fruits to those who gained it. True, it
did not strip the Turks of an inch of territory. Even the heavy loss of ships
and soldiers which it cost them was repaired in the following year. But the
loss of reputation—that tower of strength to the conqueror—was not to be
estimated. The long and successful career of the Ottoman princes, especially of
the last one, Suleiman the Magnificent, had made the Turks to be
thought invincible. There was not a nation in Christendom that did not tremble
at the idea of a war with Turkey. The spell was now broken. Though her
resources were still boundless, she lost confidence in herself. Venice gained
confidence in proportion. When the hostile fleets met in the year following the
battle of Lepanto, the Turks, though greatly the superior in numbers, declined
the combat. For the seventy years which elapsed after the close of the present
war, the Turks abandoned their efforts to make themselves masters of any of the
rich possessions of the republic, which lay so temptingly around them. When the
two nations came next into collision, Venice, instead of leaning on
confederates, took the field single-handed, and disputed it with an intrepidity
which placed her on a level with the gigantic power that assailed her. That
power was already on the wane; and those who have most carefully studied the
history of the Ottoman empire date the commencement of her decline from the
battle of Lepanto.
The allies should have been ready with their several
contingents early in the spring of the following year, 1572. They were not
ready till the summer was well advanced. One cause of delay was the difficulty
of deciding on what quarter the Turkish empire was to be attacked. The
Venetians, from an obvious regard to their own interests, were for continuing
the war in the Levant. Philip, on the other hand, from similar motives, would
have transferred it to the western part of the Mediterranean, and have undertaken
an expedition against the Barbary powers. Lastly, Pius the Fifth, urged by that
fiery enthusiasm which made him overlook or overleap every obstacle in his
path, would have marched on Constantinople, and then carried his conquering
banners to the Holy Land. These chimerical fancies of a crusader provoked a
smile—it may have been a sneer—from men better instructed in military
operations than the pontiff.
Pius again labored to infuse his own spirit
into the monarchs of Christendom. But it was in vain that he urged them to join
the League. All, for some reason or other, declined it. It is possible that
they may have had less fear of the Turk, than of augmenting the power of the
king of Spain. But the great plans of Pius the Fifth were terminated by his
death, which occurred on the first of May, 1572. He was the true author of the
League. It occupied his thoughts to the latest hour of his existence; and his
last act was to appropriate to its uses a considerable sum of money lying in
his coffers. He may be truly said to have been the only one of the confederates
who acted solely for what he conceived to be the interests of the Faith. This
soon became apparent.
The affairs of Philip the Second were at this time in
a critical situation. He much feared that one of the French faction would be
raised to the chair of St. Peter. He had great reason to distrust the policy of
France in respect to the Netherlands. Till he was more assured on these points,
he was not inclined to furnish the costly armament to which he was pledged as
his contingent. It was in vain that the allies called on Don John to aid them
with his Spanish fleet. He had orders from his brother not to quit Messina; and
it was in vain that he chafed under these orders, which threatened thus
prematurely to close the glorious career on which he had entered, and which
exposed him to the most mortifying imputations. It was not till the sixth of
July that the king allowed him to send a part of his contingent, amounting only
to twenty-two galleys and five thousand troops, to the aid of the confederates.
Some historians explain the conduct of Philip, not so
much by the embarrassments of his situation, as by his reluctance to afford his
brother the opportunity of adding fresh laurels to his brow, and possibly of
achieving for himself some independent sovereignty, like that to which Pius the
Fifth had encouraged him to aspire. It may be thought some confirmation of this
opinion—at least, it infers some jealousy of his brother's pretensions—that, in
his despatches to his ministers in Italy,
the king instructed them that, while they showed all proper deference to Don
John, they should be careful not to address him in speech or in writing by the
title of Highness, but to use that of Excellency;
adding, that they were not to speak of this suggestion as coming from him. He
caused a similar notice to be given to the ambassadors of France, Germany, and
England. This was but a feeble thread by which to check the flight of the young
eagle as he was soaring to the clouds. It served to show, however, that it was
not the will of his master that he should soar too high.
Happily Philip was relieved from his fears in regard
to the new pope, by the election of Cardinal Buoncampagno to
the vacant throne. This ecclesiastic, who took the name of Gregory the
Thirteenth, was personally known to the king, having in earlier
life passed several years at the court of Castile. He was well
affected to that court, and he possessed in full measure the zeal of his
predecessor for carrying on the war against the Moslems. He lost no time in
sending his "briefs of fire," as Don John called them, to rouse
him to new exertions in the cause. In France, too, Philip learned with
satisfaction that the Guises, the devoted partisans of Spain, had now the
direction of public affairs. Thus relieved from apprehensions on these two
quarters, Philip consented to his brother's departure with the remainder of his
squadron. It amounted to fifty-five galleys and thirty smaller vessels. But
when the prince reached Corfu, on the ninth of August, he found that the
confederates, tired of waiting, had already put to sea, under the command of
Colonna, in search of the Ottoman fleet.
The Porte had shown such extraordinary dispatch,
that in six months it had built and equipped a hundred and twenty galleys,
making, with those already on hand, a formidable fleet. It was a
remarkable proof of its resources, but suggests the idea of the wide difference
between a Turkish galley of the sixteenth century and a man-of-war in our day.
The command of the armament was given to
the Algerine chieftain, Uluch Ali,
who had so adroitly managed to bring off the few vessels which effected their
escape at the battle of Lepanto. He stood deservedly high in the confidence of
the sultan, and had the supreme direction in maritime affairs.
The two fleets came face to face with each other off
the western coast of the Morea. But though the Algerine commander was
much superior to the Christians in the number and strength of his vessels, he
declined an action, showing the same adroitness in eluding a battle that he had
before shown in escaping from one.
At the close of August the confederates returned to
Corfu, where they were reinforced by the rest of the Spanish squadron. The
combined fleet, with this addition, amounted to some two hundred and
forty-seven vessels, of which nearly two-thirds were galleys. It was a force
somewhat superior to that of the enemy. Thus strengthened, Don John, unfurling
the consecrated banner as generalissimo of the League, weighed anchor, and
steered with his whole fleet in a southerly direction. It was not long before
he appeared off the harbors of Modon and Navarino, where the two divisions of the Turkish armada were lying at
anchor. He would have attacked them separately, but, notwithstanding his
efforts, failed to prevent their effecting a junction in the harbor of Modon. On the seventh of October, Uluch Ali
ventured out of port, and seemed disposed to give battle. It was the
anniversary of the fight of Lepanto; and Don John flattered himself that he
should again see his arms crowned with victory, as on that memorable day. But
if the Turkish commander was unwilling to fight the confederates when he was
superior to them in numbers, it was not likely that he would fight them now
that he was inferior. After some maneuvers which led to no result, he
took refuge under the castle of Modon, and again
retreated into port. There Don John would have followed him, with the design of
forcing him to a battle. But from this he was dissuaded by the other leaders of
the confederates, who considered that the chances of success in a place so
strongly defended by no means warranted the risk.
It was in vain that the allies prolonged their stay in
the neighborhood, with the hope of enticing the enemy to an engagement. The
season wore away with no prospect of a better result. Meantime provisions were
failing, the stormy weather of autumn was drawing nigh, and Don John, disgusted
with what he regarded as the timid counsels of his associates, and with the
control which they were permitted to exercise over him, decided, as it was now
too late for any new enterprise, to break up and postpone further action till
the following spring, when he hoped to enter on the campaign at an earlier day
than he had done this year. The allies, accordingly, on reaching the island
of Paxo, late in October, parted from each
other, and withdrew to their respective winter-quarters. Don John, with the
Spanish armament, returned to Sicily.
The pope and the king of Spain, nowise discouraged by
the results of the campaign, resolved to resume operations early in the spring
on a still more formidable scale than before. But their intentions were
defeated by the startling intelligence, that Venice had entered into a separate
treaty with the Porte. The treaty, which was negotiated, it is said, through
the intervention of the French ambassador, was executed on the seventh of
March, 1573. The terms seemed somewhat extraordinary, considering the relative
positions of the parties. By the two principal articles the republic agreed to
pay the annual sum of one hundred thousand ducats for three years to the
sultan, and to cede the island of Cyprus, the original cause of the war. One
might suppose it was the Turks, and not the Christians, who had won the battle
of Lepanto.
Venice was a commercial state, and doubtless had more
to gain from peace than from any war, however well conducted. In this point of
view, even such a treaty may have been politic with so formidable an enemy. But
a nation's interests, in the long run, cannot, any more than those of an
individual, be divorced from its honor. And what could be more dishonorable than
for a state secretly to make terms for herself with the enemy, and desert the
allies who had come into the war at her solicitation and in her defense?
Such conduct, indeed, was too much in harmony with the past history of Venice,
and justified the reputation for bad faith which had made the European nations
so reluctant to enter into the League.
The tidings were received by Philip with his usual
composure. "If Venice," he said, "thinks she consults her own
interests by such a proceeding, I can truly say that in what I have done I
have endeavored to consult both her interests and those of
Christendom." He, however, spoke his mind more plainly afterwards to the
Venetian ambassador. The pope gave free vent to his feelings in the consistory,
where he denounced the conduct of Venice in the most bitter and contemptuous
terms. When the republic sent a special envoy to deprecate his anger, and to
excuse herself by the embarrassments of her situation, the pontiff refused to
see him. Don John would not believe in the defection of Venice when the tidings
were first announced to him. When he was advised of it by a direct
communication from her government, he replied by indignantly commanding the
great standard of the League to be torn down from his galley, and in its place
to be unfurled the banner of Castile.
Such was the end of the Holy League, on which Pius the
Fifth had so fully relied for the conquest of Constantinople and the recovery
of Palestine. Philip could now transfer the war to the quarter he had
preferred. He resolved, accordingly, to send an expedition to the Barbary
coast. Tunis was selected as the place of attack,—a thriving city, and the home
of many a corsair who preyed on the commerce of the Mediterranean. It had been
taken by Charles the Fifth, in the memorable campaign of 1535, but had since
been recovered by the Moslems. The Spaniards, however, still retained
possession of the strong fortress of the Goletta,
which overlooked the approaches to Tunis.
In the latter part of September, 1574, Don John left
the shores of Sicily at the head of a fleet consisting of about a hundred
galleys, and nearly as many smaller vessels. The number of his troops amounted
to not less than twenty thousand. The story of the campaign is a short
one. Most of the inhabitants of Tunis fled from the city. The few who remained
did not care to bring the war on their heads by offering resistance to the
Spaniards. Don John, without so much as firing a shot, marched in at the head
of his battalions, through gates flung open to receive him. He found an ample
booty awaiting him,—nearly fifty pieces of artillery, with ammunition and
military stores, large quantities of grain, cotton and woolen cloths,
rich silks and brocades, with various other kinds of costly merchandise. The
troops spent more than a week in sacking the place. They gained, in short,
everything—but glory; for little glory was to be gained where there were no
obstacles to be overcome.
Don John gave orders that no injury should be offered
to the persons of the inhabitants. He forbade that any should be made slaves.
By a proclamation, he invited all to return to their dwellings, under the
assurance of his protection. In one particular his conduct was remarkable.
Philip, disgusted with the expenses to which the maintenance of the castle of
the Goletta annually subjected him, had
recommended, if not positively directed, his brother to dismantle the place,
and to demolish in like manner the fortifications of Tunis. Instead of
heeding these instructions, Don John no sooner saw himself in possession of the
capital, than he commanded the Goletta to
be thoroughly repaired, and at the same time provided for the erection of a
strong fortress in the city. This work he committed to an Italian engineer,
named Cerbelloni, a knight of Malta, with whom
he left eight thousand soldiers, to be employed in the construction of the
fort, and to furnish him with a garrison to defend it.
Don John, it is said, had been urged to take this
course by his secretary, Juan de Soto, a man of ability, but of an intriguing
temper, who fostered in his master those ambitious projects which had been
encouraged, as we have seen, by Pius the Fifth. No more eligible spot seemed
likely to present itself for the seat of his dominion than Tunis,—a flourishing
capital surrounded by a well-peopled and fruitful territory. Philip had been
warned of the unwholesome influence exerted by De Soto; and he now sought to
remove him from the person of his brother by giving him a distinct position in
the army, and by sending another to replace him in his post of secretary. The
person thus sent was Juan de Escovedo. But it was soon found that the
influence which Escovedo acquired over the young prince was both
greater and more mischievous than that of his predecessor; and the troubles
that grew out of this new intimacy were destined, as we shall see hereafter, to
form some of the darkest pages in the history of the times.
Having provided for the security of his new
acquisition, and received, moreover, the voluntary submission of the neighboring town
of Biserta, the Spanish commander returned with
his fleet to Sicily. He landed at Palermo, amidst the roaring of cannon, the
shouts of the populace, and the usual rejoicings that announce the return of
the victorious commander. He did not, however, prolong his stay in Sicily.
After dismissing his fleet, he proceeded to Naples, where he landed about the
middle of November. He proposed to pass the winter in this capital, where the
delicious climate and the beauty of the women, says a contemporary chronicler,
had the attractions for him that belonged naturally to his age. His
partiality for Naples was amply requited by the inhabitants, especially that
lovelier portion of them whose smiles were the well-prized guerdon of the
soldier. If his brilliant exterior and the charm of his society had excited
their admiration when he first appeared among them as an adventurer in the path
of honor, how much was this admiration likely to be increased when he
returned with the halo of glory beaming around his brow, as the successful
champion of Christendom?
The days of John of Austria glided merrily along in
the gay capital of Southern Italy. But we should wrong him did we suppose that
all his hours were passed in idle dalliance. A portion of each day, on the
contrary, was set apart for study. Another part was given to the dispatch of
business. When he went abroad, he affected the society of men distinguished for
their science, or still more for their knowledge of public affairs. In his
intercourse with these persons he showed dignity of demeanor tempered
by courtesy; while his conversation revealed those lofty aspirations which
proved that his thoughts were fixed on a higher eminence than any he had yet
reached. It was clear to every observer that ambition was the moving principle
of his actions,—the passion to which every other passion, even the love of
pleasure, was wholly subordinate.
In the midst of the gaieties of Naples his thoughts
were intent on the best means of securing his African empire. He dispatched his
secretary, Escovedo, to the pope, to solicit his good offices with Philip.
Gregory entertained the same friendly feelings for Don John which his
predecessor had shown, and he good-naturedly acquiesced in his petition. He
directed his nuncio at the Castilian court to do all in his power to promote
the suit of the young chief, and to assure the king that nothing could be more
gratifying to the head of the Church than to see so worthy a recompense
bestowed on one who had rendered such signal services to Christendom. Philip
received the communication in the most gracious manner. He was grateful, he
said, for the interest which the pope condescended to take in the fortunes of
Don John; and nothing, certainly, would be more agreeable to his own feelings
than to have the power to reward his brother according to his deserts. But to
take any steps at present in the matter would be premature. He had received
information that the sultan was making extensive preparations for the recovery
of Tunis. Before giving it away, therefore, it would be well to see to whom it
belonged.
Philip's information was correct. No sooner
had Selim learned the fate of the Barbary capital, than he made
prodigious efforts for driving the Spaniards from their conquests. He assembled
a powerful armament, which he placed under the command of Uluch Ali. As lord of Algiers, that chief had a
particular interest in preventing any Christian power from planting its foot in
the neighborhood of his own dominions. The command of the land forces was given
to Sinan Pasha, Selim's son-in-law.
Early in July, the Ottoman fleet arrived off the
Barbary coast. Tunis offered as little resistance to the arms of the Moslems as
it had before done to those of the Christians. That city had been so often
transferred from one master to another, that it seemed almost a matter of
indifference to the inhabitants to whom it belonged. But the Turks found it a
more difficult matter to reduce the castle of the Goletta and
the fort raised by the brave engineer Cerbelloni,
now well advanced, though not entirely completed. It was not till the middle of
September, after an incredible waste of life on the part of the assailants, and
the extermination of nearly the whole of the Spanish garrisons, that both the
fortresses surrendered.
No sooner was he in possession of them, than the
Turkish commander did that which Philip had in vain
wished his brother to do. He razed to the ground the fortress of the Goletta. Thus ended the campaign, in which Spain, besides
her recent conquests, saw herself stripped of the strong castle which had
defied every assault of the Moslems since the time of Charles the Fifth.
One may naturally ask, Where was John of Austria all
this time? He had not been idle, nor had he remained an indifferent spectator
of the loss of the place he had so gallantly won for Spain. But when he first
received tidings of the presence of a Turkish fleet before Tunis, he was absent
on a mission to Genoa, or rather to its neighborhood. That republic was at this
time torn by factions so fierce, that it was on the brink of a civil war. The
mischief threatened to extend even more widely, as the neighboring powers,
especially France and Savoy, prepared to take part in the quarrel, in hopes of
establishing their own authority in the state. At length Philip, who had
inherited from his father the somewhat ill-defined title of "Protector of
Genoa," was compelled to interpose in the dispute. It was on this mission
that Don John was sent, to watch more nearly the rival factions. It was not
till after this domestic broil had lasted for several months, that the prudent
policy of the Spanish monarch succeeded in reconciling the hostile parties, and
thus securing the republic from the horrors of a civil war. He reaped the good
fruits of his temperate conduct in the maintenance of his own authority in the
counsels of the republic; thus binding to himself an ally whose navy, in time
of war, served greatly to strengthen his maritime resources.
While detained on this delicate mission, Don John did
what he could for Tunis, by urging the viceroys of Sicily and Naples to send
immediate aid to the beleaguered garrisons. But these functionaries seem
to have been more interested in the feuds of Genoa than in the fate of the
African colony. Granvelle, who presided over Naples, was even said to be
so jealous of the rising fame of John of Austria, as not to be unwilling that
his lofty pretensions should be somewhat humbled. The supplies sent were
wholly unequal to the exigency.
Don John, impatient of the delay, as soon as he could
extricate himself from the troubles of Genoa, sailed for Naples, and thence
speedily crossed to Sicily. He there made every effort to assemble an armament,
of which he prepared, in spite of the remonstrances of his friends,
to take the command in person. But nature, no less than man, was against him. A
tempest scattered his fleet: and when he had reassembled it, and fairly put to
sea, he was baffled by contrary winds, and taking refuge in the neighboring port
of Trapani, was detained there until tidings reached him of the fall of Tunis.
They fell heavily on his ear; for they announced to him that all his bright
visions of an African empire had vanished, like the airy fabric of an Eastern
tale. All that remained was the consciousness that he had displeased his
brother by his scheme of independent sovereignty, and by his omission to raze
the fortress of the Goletta, the
unavailing defense of which had cost the lives of so many of his
brave countrymen.
But Don John, however chagrined by the tidings, was of
too elastic a temper to yield to despondency. He was a knight-errant in the
true sense of the term. He still clung as fondly as ever to the hope of one day
carving out with his good sword an independent dominion for himself. His first
step, he considered, was to make his peace with his brother. Though not
summoned thither, he resolved to return at once to the Castilian court,—for in
that direction, he felt, lay the true road to preferment.
BOOK VI. SPANISH AFFAIRS.
|
||